3 - B - A (History) - 108 23 - History of India (From 1707 To 1947 AD)
3 - B - A (History) - 108 23 - History of India (From 1707 To 1947 AD)
3 - B - A (History) - 108 23 - History of India (From 1707 To 1947 AD)
B.A. (History)
II - Semester
108 23
HISTORY OF INDIA
(FROM 1707 TO 1947 A.D.)
Authors:
Dr Vijay Kumar Tiwary, Assistant Professor, University of Delhi
Bhaskar Priydarshy, Assistant Director, District Child Protection, Unit Saharsa
Units (1.2-1.5, 4.2, 11.4, 13)
Rajeev Garg, Academic Writer
Units (2, 3, 4.3-4.4, 5, 6.2, 6.3.1, 7.2)
Dr Pooja Kapoor, Assistant Professor, Symbiosis Law School, Noida
Units (6.3, 10)
Vikas® Publishing House
Units (1.0-1.1, 1.6-1.10, 4.0-4.1, 4.5-4.9, 6.0-6.1, 6.4-6.8, 7.0-7.1, 7.3-7.8, 8, 9, 11.0-11.3, 11.5-11.9, 12, 14)
“The copyright shall be vested with Alagappa University”
All rights reserved. No part of this publication which is material protected by this copyright notice
may be reproduced or transmitted or utilized or stored in any form or by any means now known or
hereinafter invented, electronic, digital or mechanical, including photocopying, scanning, recording
or by any information storage or retrieval system, without prior written permission from the Alagappa
University, Karaikudi, Tamil Nadu.
Information contained in this book has been published by VIKAS® Publishing House Pvt. Ltd. and has
been obtained by its Authors from sources believed to be reliable and are correct to the best of their
knowledge. However, the Alagappa University, Publisher and its Authors shall in no event be liable for
any errors, omissions or damages arising out of use of this information and specifically disclaim any
implied warranties or merchantability or fitness for any particular use.
Work Order No. AU/DDE/DE1-291/Preparation and Printing of Course Materials/2018 Dated 19.11.2018 Copies - 500
SYLLABI-BOOK MAPPING TABLE
History of India (From 1707 to 1947 A.D.)
Syllabi Mapping in Book
BLOCK IV: THE SECOND PHASE OF INDIAN NATIONAL Unit 10: The Second Phase of the
MOVEMENT (1919 – 1947) Freedom Struggle
Unit - 10: The second phase –Jallianwala Bagh tragedy –Noncooperation (Pages 170-178)
Movement. Unit 11: The Civil Disobedience
Unit - 11: The Swarajist part – The Civil Disobedience Movement –The Second Movement
World War. (Pages 179-187);
Unit - 12: The Quit India movement –The Partition and Independence –some Unit 12: Partition and Independence
personalities.Motilal Nehru, Mohamed Ali Jinna, Jawaharlal Nehru,Gandhiji, (Pages 188-209)
and Rajaji.
BLOCK V: SOCIAL AND ADMINISTRATIVE REFORMS UNDER THE
BRITISH RULE
Unit - 13: Social Reforms under the British –Economic condition of the people- Unit 13: Social, Economic and
religious and social conditions. Religious Conditions Under the
Unit- 14: Development of Education –Growth of Local Self –Government of British
Education. (Pages 210-235);
Unit 14: Development of Education
Under the British Rule
(Pages 236-266)
CONTENTS
INTRODUCTION
BLOCK III: THE FIRST PHASE OF INDIAN NATIONAL CONGRESS 1885 – 1919
AND SOME PERSONALITIES IN INDIA
UNIT 7 FORMATION OF THE INDIAN NATIONAL CONGRESS 122-138
7.0 Introduction
7.1 Objectives
7.2 The Indian National Congress: Formation by Moderates
7.3 The Rise of the Extremists
7.3.1 Factors that Led to the Rise of Extremism
7.3.2 Objectives and Methods of Extremists
7.4 Answers to Check Your Progress Questions
7.5 Summary
7.6 Key Words
7.7 Self Assessment Questions and Exercises
7.8 Further Readings
The period between 1707 and 1947 is extremely crucial in the history of India.
NOTES
The advent of the Europeans for the purpose of trading later led to the
invasion of the British in India who ruled over India for a long time. During
the reign of the British,
India was exploited for its economic resources to a great extent.
However, their rule also led to various reforms in the social, educational,
commercial and judicial spheres in India. The World War I and World War II
played an important role in arousing the spirit of nationalism among people.
Various freedom fighters fought for the Independence of the country
in their own way. Finally, India became independent on 15th August 1947
and became a Republic on 26th January 1950 when the Constitution of India
was enforced.
This book, History of India (From 1707 to 1947 AD), is written keeping
the distance learning student in mind. It is presented in a user-friendly format
using a clear, lucid language. Each unit contains an Introduction and a list of
Objectives to prepare the student for what to expect in the text. At the end
of each unit are a Summary and a list of Key Words, to aid in recollection of
concepts learnt. All units contain Self-Assessment Questions and Exercises,
and strategically placed Check Your Progress questions so the student can
keep track of what has been discussed.
Self-Instructional
Material
Later Mughals and the
BLOCK - I Rise of the Marathas
1.0 INTRODUCTION
The establishment of the Mughal Dynasty brought about many social and
cultural changes in India. One of the last great Mughals was Aurangzeb, who
had the largest area of India under his reign. Soon the religious policy adopted
by him gradually distanced the loyal Hindus and Rajputs from his Empire.
Around the same time, another great empire rose to power, led by Shivaji.
Taking advantage of the numerous rebellions in the Mughal Dynasty, Shivaji
soon overpowered them and annexed large parts of the Mughal Empire. The
Mughal rulers after Aurangzeb are called the later Mughals.
With the fall of the Mughal Empire, the territories under its reign
witnessed chaos and were fragmented into small princely states. Regional
rulers who had till now nourished dreams of throwing out the Mughals started
waging bitter wars. States like Awadh, Hyderabad, Punjab, and Mysore came
to the fore. The Nawabs of Awadh and Hyderabad became mere puppets in
the hands of the British. This unit deals with the rise of regional powers in
Self-Instructional
Material 1
Later Mughals and the Bengal, Awadh, Punjab, Sindh, Hyderabad and Mysore. It will also discuss
Rise of the Marathas
the rise of the Maratha Empire.
After the death of Aurangzeb, no new emperor arrived at the scene who
could compare with the legacy of the great Mughal emperors of the past.
Muhammad Shah, Ahmad Shah Bahadur, Alamgir II, Shah Alam-II, and so
on, were all weak leaders who were not able to sort the rot in the empire.
Over time, the power of the Mughal emperor began to weaken. With the
centre weakening, regional players began to take centre stage in India. Let
us discuss these various regional kingdoms that began to emerge.
1.2.1 Bengal
In 1717, the Mughal emperor issued a firman by which it granted special
benefits to the English East India Company, namely, exemption of taxes on
goods imported and exported from Bengal. However, this concession did not
ensure that they could trade in Bengal without paying any taxes. The Company
servants like other Indian traders had to pay taxes. This misinterpretation
of the firman became a constant cause of dispute between the Nawabs of
Bengal and the Company. All the Nawabs of Bengal, beginning from Murshid
Quli Khan to Alivardi Khan, refused to sympathize with the Company’s
misconstrued explanation of the firmanand even forced them to pay a huge
amount as indemnity if they used the dastaks wrongly.
In 1741, when Muhammad Shah Rangila was the Mughal sovereign,
Alivardi Khan, the governor of Bengal, announced himself independent
and established his capital at Murshidabad. In 1756, with Alivardi’s demise
and in the absence of any rightful successor, several factions vied with each
other to make their chosen candidate the Nawab of Bengal. Though Alivardi
wanted his grandson, Siraj-ud-Daula, son of his youngest daughter, to
acquire the nawabship, the latter’s succession to the throne was not accepted
by other contenders, such as Shaukat Jang (faujdar of Purnea) and Ghasiti
Begam, eldest daughter of Alivardi. In the wake of increasing court intrigues,
the English East India Company took the opportunity to win factions in
Self-Instructional
2 Material
their favour and work against the Nawab and thereby lead to a headlong Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
confrontation with the Nawab.
As Bengal, in the eighteenth century, was the most prosperous province,
the English East India Company considered it economically and politically
NOTES
extremely lucrative. Hence, it is natural that they wanted to consolidate
their position further in Bengal. They wanted to base their operations in
Calcutta. There were other European contenders too in Bengal, namely, the
Dutch, having their factory at Chinsura and the French with their factory at
Chandernagor. Siraj-ud-Daula became the Nawab of Bengal in 1756. Apart
from having several foes in the family who were not happy with the succession,
he was immature and lacked adequate skills to tackle the situation. In the
South, the English East India Company and the French were vying against
each other. Without seeking Nawab Siraj-ud-Daulah’s consent, the English
began to build fortifications in Calcutta. They even chose to disregard the
Nawab’s order to curtail augmentation of their military resources and abuse
the use of dastaks granted to them by the firman of 1717. Also, Company
servants began misusing the concessions granted by the firman of 1717 by
extending the privileges over their private trade too. Causing further economic
loss to Bengal, the officials began to profit by selling off the dastaks to the
Indian merchants. Another cause of discontentment towards the English
for Siraj was their conscious move to give protection to Siraj’s foe Krishna
Das, son of Raja Rajballava. The intrigue between the Nawabs of Bengal
and the British was to play a vital role in the emergence of the British as the
paramount power later on in the century.
1.2.2 Awadh
After the waning of the Mughal Empire, the second half of the 18th century
witnessed gradual expansion of the British East India Company’s role in
North India and this had a strong bearing on the economy and politics of
Awadh. Until 1801, Awadh was treated as a buffer state protecting Bengal
against the powers of the Marathas and the question of encroachment and
annexation did not arise. It was only around the turn of the 19th century that
Awadh became a block to further British expansion. This eventually led to
the takeover of the province in 1856.
The enmity between Awadh and the English started in 1764 with the
Battle of Buxar. In this battle, the English defeated the combined forces of the
Nawab Shuja-ud-Daula of Awadh, Mughal emperor Shah Alam and Nawab
of Bengal, Mir Qasim. After the battle, the Treaty of Allahabad was signed
between the Nawab of Awadh and the British. According to this treaty, Shuja-
ud-Daula was allowed to retain Awadh. However, Kora and Allahabad were
ceded to the Mughal emperor. A war indemnity of ` 50,00,000 to be paid in
instalments was imposed on Shuja who entered into a reciprocal arrangement
with the company for defence of each other’s territory. The Nawabs were
Self-Instructional
Material 3
Later Mughals and the aware of the company’s burgeoning strength and aspirations and, like the
Rise of the Marathas
Bengal Nawabs, they were not prepared to let go without at least a semblance
of a struggle. This assumed, in the initial stages, the form of a concerted
drive against British commercial penetration of Awadh. Alongside, a major
NOTES reorganization and reform of the Awadh army was initiated.
The military reforms initiated by Shuja-ud-Daula after the humiliation
at Buxar were not intended to either intimidate the English or promote a war
against them. Rather, it would seem that the overall military effort reflected
the Nawab’s anxiety to defend his political authority at a time when it was
being steadily undermined by the alien company. For the Company, Awadh
was too important and lucrative a province to be left alone. Its vast amount
of revenue could be used to subsidize the company’s armies. In carefully
planned stages, the company stepped up its fiscal demands. In 1773, the first
definitive treaty was concluded between Awadh and the English East India
Company. By this treaty, the Nawab agreed to pay ` 2,10,000 monthly for
each brigade of company troops that would remain present in Awadh or
Allahabad. This provision established the beginning of Awadh’s chronic
indebtedness to the Company and represented the initial British thrust into
the region’s political system.
It was in and after 1775 that the vulnerability of the nawabi came into
sharp focus. It was also in these years, ironically enough, that the emergence of
a provincial cultural identity centered on the new court and capital at Lucknow
(the capital had been shifted from Fyzabad) was more clearly identifiable
than before. Asaf-ud-Daula’s succession to the throne in 1775 went without
a hitch notwithstanding the hostility of some of Shuja’ s courtiers and of the
opposition faction of his brother Saadat Ali, the Governor of Rohilkhand.
Soon, however, under the stewardship of Murtaza Khan (Asaf’s favourite who
received the exalted title of Mukhtar-ud-Daula), the stability of the existing
political set up was strengthened as older nobles and generals were displaced.
Furthermore, Mukhtar allowed the Company to negotiate a treaty with the
Nawab ceding to English control the territories surrounding Benaras, north
to Jaunpur and west to Allahabad, then held by Chait Singh. The treaty also
fixed a larger subsidy than before for the Company brigade and excluded
the Mughal emperor from all future Anglo-Nawabi transactions. Finally all
diplomatic transactions and foreign intelligence were to be controlled by
the English through the resident at the Nawab’s court. The disintegration
of the political system, the blatant intervention of the English in Awadh’s
affairs and Asaf-ud-Daula’s excessively indulgent disposition and disregard
of political affairs alarmed a sizeable section of the Awadh nobility. The
situation worsened as troops were in arrears and at places mutinied. These acts
of disturbance and lawlessness smoothened the way for British intervention.
In the 1770s, the English East India Company persistently eroded the basis
of Awadh’s sovereignty. The rapid inroads of the English made by virtue of
Self-Instructional
4 Material
their military presence seriously undermined the Nawabi regime which in Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
1780 came up with the first declaration of protest. The supreme government in
Calcutta was forced to realize that unremitting pressure on Awadh’s resources
could not be sustained indefinitely and that the excessive intervention of
the English Resident would have to be curtailed if Awadh’s usefulness as a NOTES
subsidiary was to be guaranteed.
Thus, in 1784, Warren Hastings entered into a new series of
arrangements with Asaf-ud-Daula which reduced the debt by ` 50 lakh and
thereby, the pressure on the Awadh regime. In the following decade and a
half, the Awadh regime continued to function as a semi-autonomous regional
power whose relations with the company were cordial. This state of affairs
lasted until 1797, the year of Asaf’s demise, when the British once more
intervened in the succession issue. Wazir Ali, Asaf’s chosen successor, was
deposed in favour of Saadat Ali. With Saadat Ali a formal treaty was signed
on 21 February 1798 which increased the subsidy to ` 76 lakh yearly.
A more forward policy was initiated by Lord Wellesley who arrived in
1798 only to reject the Awadh system. The Nawab’s declaration of inability to
pay the increased financial demand of the company gave Wellesley a suitable
pretext to contemplate annexation. In September 1801, Henry Wellesley
arrived in Lucknow to force Saadat’s surrender of his whole territory. After
protracted negotiations, the company accepted the perpetual sovereignty
of Rohilkhand, Gorakhpur and the Doab which yielded a gross amount of
` 1 crore 35 lakh. The annexations inaugurated anew era in Anglo-Awadh
relations. The shrunken subah could no longer pose a threat to the stability of
the Company dominions nor did the rulers of Awadh entertain any notion of
resistance to the relentless forward march of the English. Deprived of their
army and half of their territory, they concentrated their energies in cultural
pursuits.
In this, they were following the footsteps of Asaf-ud-Daula, who had
built up around the Lucknow court a vibrant and living cultural arena. The
patronage extended to luminaries and poets like Mirza Rafi Sauda (1713-86)
and Mir Ghulam Hasan (1734–86). Lucknow had been a second home for
these sensitive men of letters who had left Delhi and lamented for the world
they had loved and lost. The assumption of imperial status by Ghazi-ud-
din-Hyder (1819) and the formal revocation of Mughal sovereignty was an
integral part of the blooming court culture of Awadh. But this coincided with
the decline in the ruler’s control over the administration and province. The
heavy price that had to be continually paid to the Company for ‘protection’,
the devolution of administrative responsibility to ministers, and the dominant
position of the British Resident, were facts which no regal pomp and ceremony
could conceal.
The Nawab of Awadh had many heirs and could not, therefore, be
covered by the Doctrine of Lapse. Some other pretext had to be found for Self-Instructional
Material 5
Later Mughals and the depriving him of his dominions. Finally, Lord Dalhousie hit upon the idea
Rise of the Marathas
of alleviating the plight of the people of Awadh. Nawab Wajid Ali Shah was
accused of having misgoverned his state and of refusing to introduce reforms.
His state was, therefore, annexed in 1856. Undoubtedly, the degeneration of
NOTES the administration of Awadh was a painful reality for its people.
1.2.3 Hyderabad
Six Deccan subahs of the Mughal Empire made up the area of Hyderabad.
Since the Mughals were constantly involved in a struggle with the warring
Marathas, they had neglected to consolidate the newly-conquered Deccan
region. After Aurangzeb had died, an ambitious Zulfiqar Khan, who had
hitherto been the strongest and most influential general of Aurangzeb, vowed
to seize control of the Deccan subahs. To do so, he decided to befriend the
Mughal enemies—the Marathas—and entered into a secret pact with them.
Since Khan was a Shia Muslim, his ambition was to establish a Shia kingdom
where Bijapur and Golconda had been. But he was not the only one with his
eye on the coveted prize of these two states. Chin Qilich Kahan (later known
as Nizam-ul-Mulk Asaf Jah) was a powerful mansabdar who also wanted to
set up an independent state in the Deccan.
Zulfiqar Khan and Chin Qilich Khan had been enemies for a long
time, since they belonged to two warring camps in the Mughal court—Irani
and Turani. However, after Aurangzeb died, Zulfiqar Khan had a slight edge
because his father Asad Khan, had been the wazir in Aurangzeb’s time and
managed to maintain his influence for much longer after the Emperor died.
Zulfiqar came even closer to realizing his ambition when in 1708, he was
granted the vice-royalty of the Deccan by Bahadur Shah I. He held that post
until his death in 1713 at the hands of his killer, Farrukh-Siyar.
Immediately after Aurangzeb died, as was the norm, his sons started
fighting among themselves to take over the throne. However, Chin Qilich
Khan remained neutral at his post in Bijapur. He was made the Governor of
Awadh and Faujdar of Gorakhpur by Bahadur Shah on 9 December 1707.
He was thus removed from Bijapur where his ambitions had lain. When
Bahadur Shah eventually came close to the end of his reign, Chin Qilich
Khan rejoined public service because he saw another opportunity for gaining
power. However, the reigns of the Deccan were handed over to Nizam-ul-
Mulk in 1713 by Farrukh-Siyar, who gave Nizam-ul-Mulk prestigious titles
like Khan Khana and Bahadur Fatehjang in return for his services. The new
Governor, Nizam-ul-Mulk, was an ambitious man and aspired to rule the
Deccan region independently of the Mughal interference.
Nizam-ul-Mulk was a shrewd and tactful administrator. He wanted to
suppress the Marathas and to do so, he put a stop to the payment of ‘chauth’
and incited the already proud and selfish Maratha chiefs against the Sahu.
In the meantime, at the Delhi court a number of political intrigues were
Self-Instructional
6 Material
brewing and as a result, Nizam-ul-Mulk was summoned from the Deccan Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
close to the end of 1715 and replaced by Husain Ali. Nizam-ul-Mulk was
sent to control Muradabad and later to Bihar. While he was still preparing to
assume charge of his new duties Farrukh-Siyar fell and Nizam-ul-Mulk was
transferred again, this time to Malwa. This time, he received the pledge that NOTES
he would not be transferred again.
It was finally in Malwa that Nizam-ul-Mulk came into his own as a
great leader. He became so popular that the Sayyid brother became jealous of
him and he was summoned back to the court. However, Nizam-ul-Mulk was
not happy with this decision and rebelled against it—he led the army to take
control of Asirgarh in May 1720 and three days later, Burhanpur. The Sayyid
brothers sent Sayyid Dilawar Ali Khan and Alam Ali Khan to overcome
Nizam-ul-Mulk. However, Dilawar Ali Khan tasted defeat in June 1720 and
Alam Ali Khan was killed in the battle. Husain Ali was also murdered when
he was on his way to the Deccan, on 8 October 1720. Sayyid Abdullah was
also killed soon after.
Once the Sayyid brothers were out of his way, Nizam-ul-Mulk appointed
himself the ruler of the six subahs of the Deccan and shifted his attention to
overpowering the Marathas. In February 1722, his feats were recognized by
the Mughal ruler and he was granted the office of the Wazir of the Mughal
Empire, which he remained until 1724. He was a strict disciplinarian and
tried to rule the court with an iron hand. However, the hangers-on at the
court did not like this. They spread stories about him to the king. As a wazir,
his tenure was highly dissatisfying for him, even though he managed to add
Malwa and Gujarat to the Deccan area.
Once he found out that he was not appreciated at the court, he left for
the Deccan without taking leave of the emperor. Obviously, the emperor
felt insulted and appointed Mubariz Khan as the Viceroy of the Deccan and
ordered the new Viceroy to bring the Nizam to the court, dead or alive. But
the Nizam was not so easily defeated and he killed Mubariz Khan and sent his
head to the emperor instead. Nizam-ul-Mulk also defeated Mubariz Khan’s
son and overtook the reigns of Hyderabad in early 1725.
The historian, Irvine, writes, ‘From this period may be dated Nizam-
ul-Mulk’s virtual independence and the foundation of the present Hyderabad
state.’ The Nizam started his rule in earnest and appointed officers for
various posts, besides promoting his favourites and conferring titles upon the
deserving officers. He also issued assignments on land revenue according to
his own idea of administration. While in all other ways, he was like a king,
he refrained from overt royal manifestations like the use of scarlet or imperial
umbrella, the recitation of the Friday prayer in his own name and the issue
of coins stamped with his own superscription.
Self-Instructional
Material 7
Later Mughals and the Nizam-ul-Malik was an intelligent ruler and gauged the intentions of
Rise of the Marathas
the Marathas, specifically Peshwa Baji Rao I, to oppose his independent rule
in the Deccan. He decided thus to take preventive measures. At the same
time, there were many Maratha chieftains who were dissatisfied with the
NOTES Peshwa and the Nizam got them to his side. The battle between the Nizam
and supporters and Peshwa Baji Rao I continued for five years—from 1727
to 1732. In 1728, the Nizam was defeated at Palkhed. His main supporter,
Senapati Trimbak Rao Dabhade, was killed later in 1731.
Nizam-ul-Mulk realized that he needed to negotiate a mutually
beneficial treaty with the Peshwa, who also wanted peace after such a long
period of strife and wanted Nizam’s support for his expeditions to the north.
The two leaders managed to reach a compromise in December 1732 which
gave the Nizam freedom to expand his empire in the south and the Peshwa
to expand his empire in the north.
When Peshwa Baji Rao I suddenly died soon after, the Nizam was
summoned by the emperor and he reached Delhi in July 1737. Here, the
Nizam was given the title of Asaf Jah. The Nizam then proceeded to Malwa
but was overpowered by Peshwa Baji Rao near Bhopal and forced to sign a
humiliating peace treaty in January 1738. The Nizam had to sign away the
subedari of Malwa to Baji Rao as well as the area between rivers Narmada
and Chambal.
After the attack of Nadir Shah on the Mughal India, the Nizam was
summoned to Delhi by the emperor who wanted the Nizam to finalize a
peace treaty with Nadir Shah. The Nizam succeeded in this task but it didn’t
amount to much due to the intervention of Saadat Ali Khan.
Nizam-ul-Mulk controlled the Deccan region until he died in 1748. He
maintained his loyalty to the Mughal ruler and rejected Nadir Shah’s offer
of gaining control of the throne in Delhi. Not only was Nizam-ul-Mulk an
able general and a thoughtful, progressive administrator but he was a shrewd
statesman and diplomat as well. He helped to uplift the regions under his
reigns financially by successfully suppressing the refractory chiefs, over-
ambitious officers and robbers. He promoted trade through his measured
revenue assessment and taxation policies. Religion-wise also, he was tolerant
and progressive. His right hand man was Puran Chand, designated as Diwan.
After Nizam-ul-Mulk died, a war of succession followed which
ultimately became interlinked with the Anglo-French dispute in the Deccan.
It was finally in 1762 that India reached a level of political stability when
Nizam Ali came to the throne and ruled for over 40 years. After the English
East India company started to establish itself and Lord Wellesley was the
administrator, the Nizam entered into a subsidiary alliance with them and
became their ally.
Self-Instructional
8 Material
1.2.4 Punjab Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
Ranjit Singh made himself the master of Punjab. The first regular contact
between Ranjit Singh and the British seems to have been made in 1800,
when India was threatened by an invasion of Zaman Shah, the Afghan ruler NOTES
who had been invited by Tipu Sultan, a bitter enemy of the British. As a
precautionary measure, the British sent Munshi Yusuf Ali to the court of
Ranjit Singh with rich presents to win the Maharaja over to the British side.
Soon, however, he learnt that the danger of Zaman Shah’s invasion receded
and Yusaf Ali was recalled.
The second contact was made in 1805, when the Maratha chief Holkar
entered Punjab with help from Ranjit Singh. Ranjit Singh had gone to conquer
Multan and Jhang but came to Amritsar on learning about Holkar’s arrival. He
called a meeting of a Sarbat Khalsa to decide about the policy to be followed
towards Holkar. Fateh Singh Ahluwalia and Bhag Singh of Jind advised Ranjit
Singh not to come in conflict with the British by helping Holkar. Ranjit Singh
told Holkar politely that he would not help him against the British. General
Lake and Maharaja Ranjit Singh concluded an agreement in January, 1806.
As the danger of French invasion on India became remote, the English
adopted a stern policy towards Ranjit Singh. He was given a note by the
Governor General Metcalfe which contained some soft-worded warnings
against his aggressive policy. Ranjit Singh was asked to restore all the places
he had taken possession of since 1806 to the former possessors which will
confine his army right to the bank of the Sutlej. Ranjit Singh was not prepared
to accept the demand. However, he withdrew his troops from Ambala and
Saniwal but continued to retain Faridkot. Ranjit Singh fortified the fort of
Govindgarh. But in the last stage, Ranjit Singh changed his mind and agreed
to sign the Treaty of Amritsar in 1809.
One of the effects of the treaty of Amritsar was that the British
government was able to take the Sutlej states under its protection. Ranjit
Singh’s advance in the east was checked but he was given a carte blanche so
far as the region to the west of the Sutlej was concerned.
The death of Maharaja Ranjit Singh in June 1839 was followed by
political instability and rapid changes of government in the Punjab. Selfish
and corrupt leaders came to the front. Ultimately, power fell into the hands
of the brave and patriotic but utterly indisciplined army. This led the British
to look greedily across the Sutlej upon the land of the five rivers even though
they had signed a treaty in 1809. Figure 1.1 shows a map displaying the
kingdom of Maharaja Ranjit Singh.
Self-Instructional
Material 9
Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
NOTES
Nearly three months after the Aurangzeb’s death, Sambhaji’s son Sahu (born
on 18 May 1682) who had been in Mughal captivity since November 3, 1689
was liberated on 8 May 1707 by Aurangzeb’s second son, who ascended the
throne as Bahadur Shah I. Sahu was recognized as the king of the Marathas
and his right to the Maratha swaraj and to chauth and sardeshmukhi of the
Deccani subahs of the Mughals was also probably recognized. The Mughal
suzerainty was protected through the arrangement that he would rule as a
vassal of the Empire. The intention of the Mughals was to end long-drawn
wars in the Deccan or to create dissensions in the Maratha camp. Both
situations were advantageous to the Mughals and they were not disappointed.
Sahu’s release was followed by a civil war between the forces of Tarabai and
Sahu, which lasted up to 1714.
Balaji Viswanath (1713-1720)
Balaji Viswanath began his career as a small revenue official and was given
the title of ‘Sena Karte’ (maker of the army) by Shahu in 1708. He became Self-Instructional
Material 11
Later Mughals and the Peshwa in 1713 and made the post the most important and powerful as well
Rise of the Marathas
as hereditary. He played a crucial role in the final victory of Shahu by winning
over almost all the Maratha sardars to the side of Shahu.
He concluded an agreement with the Sayyid brothers (1719) by which
NOTES
the Mughal Emperor (Farukh Siyar) recognized Shahu as the king of the
Swarajya. Balaji’s character and capacity and the peculiar circumstances of
the country favoured the rise of the Peshwas to power and renown. One of
the first things Balaji was called upon to do was to secure the restoration of
Sahu’s mother to him from the custody of the Mughals who had detained her
at Delhi as hostage for the good behaviour of her son Sahu, Balaji opened
direct negotiations with the Saiyid brothers and in February 1719 all his
demands were accepted.
Accordingly Sahu’s mother and family was released, he was recognized
as the ruler of Shivaji’s home dominions and was allowed to collect chauth
and sardeshmukhi from the six subahs of the Deccan, as also in Karnataka
and Tamil Nadu. In return for all this, the Marathas were expected to keep a
contingent on 15,000 horses in the service of the Mughals and to maintain
order in the Deccan. Balaji’s success in Delhi greatly increased his power
and prestige. Balaji Vishwanath has been rightly called the ‘second founder
of the Maratha state’.
He perceived that the revival of Maratha power in its old monarchical
form was no longer possible and it would be difficult to harness the nation’s
military resources to the common cause unless concessions were made to the
great warlords who had won an important place for themselves. He made them
subordinate allies or confederates of the sovereign, granting them a free hand
in administering their conquests and called from them no greater sacrifice
than uniting on matters of common policy. This arrangement, however, left
too much authority in the hands of these chiefs, without providing for checks
to call them to account, which was responsible for the speedy expansion of
the Maratha power and its rapid dissolution. The term of Balaji’s peshwaship
marks the transition from the royal period to the age of the Peshwas.
Balaji has been credited with ‘a mastery of finance’. Though constantly
engaged in war and diplomacy, he took firm measures to put a stop to anarchy
in the kingdom. He suppressed freebooters and restored civil government.
Solid foundations were laid for a well-organized revenue system in the Swaraj
territory, which was under direct royal administration.
Baji Rao I (1720-1740)
Baji Rao, the eldest son of Balaji Viswanath, succeeded him as peshwa at the
young age of twenty. He was considered the greatest exponent of guerrilla
tactics after Shivaji and Maratha power reached its zenith under him.
Self-Instructional
12 Material
Under him, several Maratha families became prominent and got Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
themselves entrenched in different parts of India. Some of these places were
as follows:
• Gaekwad at Baroda
NOTES
• Bhonsles at Nagpur
• Holkars at Indore
• Scindias at Gwalior
• Peshwas at Pune
After defeating and expelling the Siddhis of Janjira from the mainland
(1722), he conquered Bassein and Salsette from the Portuguese (1733). He
also defeated the Nizam-ul-Mulk near Bhopal and concluded the Treaty of
Durai Sarai by which he got Malwa and Bundelkhand from the latter (1737).
He led innumerable successful expeditions into north India to weaken the
Mughal Empire and to make the Marathas the supreme power in India.
Balaji Baji Rao (1740-1761)
Balaji Baji Rao was popularly known as ‘Nana Saheb’. He succeeded his
father at the age of twenty. After the death of his father, the management of all
state affairs was left in his hands. In an agreement with the Mughal emperor
(Ahmad Shah), the peshwa (1752) was to protect the Mughal Empire from
the internal and the external (Ahmad Shah Abdali) enemies in return for the
chauth. He remained dependent on the advice and guidance of his cousin
Sadashiva Rao Bhau.
With regard to the future policy of his government, he asked Sadashiva
Rao Bhau to continue the policies of his father and said ‘The elder Bajirao
achieved great deeds in the devoted service of the king. But his life was cut
short. You are his son, and you ought to consummate his policy of conquering
the whole of Hindustan and establish an Empire and lead your horses beyond
Attock.’
One of the earliest achievements of Nana Saheb was better financial
management of the Empire by exercising careful supervision over all financial
transactions. He later discussed the affairs of northern India with Holkar and
Scindia and in April 1742 marched northwards to consolidate the Maratha
authority in Bundelkhand. In 1743 he undertook the second expedition to the
north to help Ali Vardi Khan (in Bengal) whose territories had been ravaged by
Raghuji Bhonsle. The Peshwa reached Murshidabad and met Ali Vardi Khan
who agreed to pay him the chauth for Bengal and `22 lakh to the Peshwa
for the expenses of his expedition. By this arrangement the Peshwa freed Ali
Vardi Khan’s territories from the ravages of Raghuji’s troops. During the first
half of his Peshwaship he established Maratha supremacy in Karnataka and
sent expeditions to Rajputana.
Self-Instructional
Material 13
Later Mughals and the Sahu died childless on 15 December 1749. He had nominated Ramraja,
Rise of the Marathas
a grandson of Tarabai, as his successor before his death. Ramaraja was
crowned as Chhatrapati in January 1750. Since he was weak and incompetent,
Tarabai tried to make him a puppet in her own hands, which caused utter
NOTES confusion and crisis in the Maratha kingdom; it deepened further when the
Peshwa learnt that Ramaraja was not the grandson of Tarabai but an impostor.
When this fact came to knowledge, the Chhatrapati was virtually confined
in the fort at Satara and lost all contacts with political developments. Hence
forth, Pune became the real capital of the Maratha confederacy and the
peshwa its virtual ruler.
During the second period of Balaji’s regime (1751–1761), four
campaigns were organized in the north. The Punjab politics was at the time in
a confused state and as a result the first two invasions of Ahmad Shah Abdali,
the subahs of Lahore, Multan and Kashmir were annexed by Abdali to his
dominions. After the third invasion, the Mughal wazir, Safdarjung, persuaded
the Emperor to enter into an agreement with the Marathas in May 1752 for
undertaking defence of the Empire against its internal and external foes. In
return the Marathas were to get the chauth of the north-western provinces
usurped and occupied by the Afghans. However, that chauth could only be
secured by the actual conquest. The Marathas were also given the subahs
of Agra and Ajmer. As a result of this agreement the Maratha military force
was posted at Delhi and they repeatedly interfered in the politics of North
India and established their supremacy at Delhi.
This arrangement would have marked the fulfillment of Balaji Baji
Rao’s dream of ‘a Mughal–Maratha alliance for the governance of India as
a whole’. But Safdarjung lost his wazirship and retired to Awadh in 1753,
and power in the imperial court passed to Imad-ul-Mulk, grandson of Nizam
ul-Mulk. He terrorized the helpless Emperor with Maratha help and secured
the office of wazir, dethroned Ahmad Shah and placed Alamgir II, grandson
of Bahadur Shah, on the imperial throne in 1754.
There was a wazir of Delhi whose rule was so barren of good result and
so full of misery to himself and to the empire, to his friends and foes alike,
as Imad-ul-Mulk’s. At first he ‘clung like a helpless infant to the breast of
the Marathas’; but being unable to continue ‘the cash nexus on which alone
Maratha friendship depended’, he agreed to Ahmad Shah Abdali’s project
of ousting the Marathas from the Doab and Shuja-ud-Daula of Awadh, son
and successor of Safdarjang, from provincial governorship (1757). This drew
Shuja-ud-Daula, Surajmal Jat and the Marathas together and left Imad-ul-
Mulk utterly friendless during the absence of Abdali from India. As per the
above arrangements early in 1758, Raghunath Rao, accompanied by Malhar
Rao Holkar, entered the Punjab. He was joined by Adina Beg Khan and the
Sikhs. Sirhind fell, Lahore was occupied and the Afghans were expelled (April
1758). Timur Shah fled, pursued by the Marathas up to the Chenab. They
Self-Instructional
14 Material
did not cross the river because it was too deep for fording and the districts Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
beyond it were inhabited mostly by the Afghans.
Raghunath Rao returned from Punjab after leaving the province in
the charge of Adina Beg Khan. Confusion followed the latter’s death a few
NOTES
months later (October 1758). The Peshwa sent a large army under Dattaji
Scindia who reached the eastern bank of the Sutlej (April 1759), and sent
Sabaji Scindia to Lahore to take over the governorship of the province.
Within a few months, a strong army sent by Abdali crossed the Indus. Sabaji
fell back precipitately, abandoning the entire province of the Punjab to the
Afghans. Abdali established his government at Lahore, resumed his march
and entered Sirhind (November 1759).
The Maratha adventure in the Punjab has been acclaimed by some
historians as ‘carrying the Hindu paramount up to Attock’. It is doubtful if
the Maratha army actually advanced as far as Attock and the collection of
revenue in the trans-Chenab district was a purely temporary affair. The peshwa
did not realize that the Punjab could not be retained without keeping a large
well-equipped force constantly on the spot. This was not possible because the
necessary funds were not available and no Maratha soldier could stand the
winter of Lahore. No first-rate Maratha general was posted in the Punjab as
warden of the North-west frontier. The peshwa sanctioned ‘a provocatively
advanced frontier’, which made war with Abdali inevitable, but he made no
adequate arrangement for its defence.
North India: Bhau’s expedition (1760)
On return towards Delhi (May 1759) after the conquest of Punjab, Dattaji
Scindia was involved in hostilities with Najib-ud-Daula in Rohilkhand. He
suffered defeat and retreated towards Panipat (December 1759), and heard
that Abdali’s forces were advancing from Sind and had occupied Ambala.
His resistance failed and he was killed in a battle with Abdali at Barari, some
16 km north of Delhi (January 1760). Malhar Rao Holkar was routed by the
Afghans at Sikanderabad. Thereafter the Maratha army in Hindustan ceased
to exist.
When the news of these disasters reached the Peshwa at Poona, he
realized that ‘all his gains in North India had been wiped out, and he must
again fight for the Maratha control over the Delhi Empire and build up his
supremacy in Hindustan from the very foundations.’ This crisis could be met
only by sending a strong army to the North. Soon the Peshwa dispatched
the Maratha troops under his cousin Sadashiv Rao Bhau and his eldest son
Vishwas Rao. The Maratha artillery was to be commanded by Ibrahim Khan
Gardi. In July 1760, the Marathas occupied Delhi. This small success added
to the prestige of the Marathas, but they were friendless in the whole of
North India. Even the Jat king Surajmal deserted them at the last moment.
On the other hand, Ahmad Shah Abdali had been able to secure the support
Self-Instructional
Material 15
Later Mughals and the of the Ruhela Chiefs Najib-ud-daula and Nawab Shuja-ud-Daula of Awadh.
Rise of the Marathas
During this period some futile attempts were made for peace between
Ahmad Shah Abdali and the Peshwa, but they could not succeed due to the
exorbitant demands of the Marathas and self-interest of the Muslim rulers.
NOTES This culminated in the unfortunate and disastrous battle of Panipat. The
Battle of Panipat (January 14, 1761) resulted in the death of Viswas Rao
(son of Nana Saheb).
Madhav Rao (1761–1772), Narayana Rao (1772–1773), Sawai Madhav
Rao (1773–1795), and Baji Rao II (1795–1818) succeeded him thereafter.
Self-Instructional
Material 23
Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas 1.5 THIRD BATTLE OF PANIPAT
The conquest and occupation of the Punjab by the Marathas brought them
NOTES into conflict with Ahmad Shah Abdali. The Third Battle of Panipat took
place on 14 January 1761, at Panipat (Haryana). The battle pitted the French-
supplied artillery and cavalry of the Marathas against the heavy cavalry and
mounted artillery of the Afghans led by Ahmad Shah Durrani, also known
as Ahmad Shah Abdali. The battle is considered as one of the largest battles
fought in the 18th century. The battle lasted for several days and involved
over 1,25,000 men. Protracted skirmishes occurred, with losses and gains on
both sides. The forces led by Ahmad Shah Durrani came out victorious after
destroying several Maratha flanks. The extent of the losses on both sides was
heavily disputed by historians, but it is believed that between 60,000–70,000
were killed in fighting, while number of the injured and prisoners taken vary
considerably. The result of the battle was the halting of the Maratha advances
in the north.
Causes of Third Battle of Panipat
The causes of the Third Battle of Panipat were many. Some of them were
as follows:
• Invasions of Nadir Shah: Nadir Shah defeated the Mughal troops
near Karnal. Then he marched to Delhi, where he stayed for 57 days.
He took away the accumulated wealth of 348 years and the famous
Peacock Throne from Delhi. The invasion of Nadir Shah exposed the
weakness of Mughal Empire. It encouraged the Afghans to invade
India.
• Ambitions of Ahmad Shah Abdali: He was an ambitious ruler and a
gallant soldier. He dreamt to be the ruler of India and was not satisfied
by merely plundering raids.
• Attack of Maratha army on Punjab: Maratha army attacked those
regions which belonged to the heirs of Nadir Shah. Ahmad Shah Abdali
wanted to teach lesson to the Marathas and break their power.
• Internal disputes: The internal disputes were also responsible for
foreign invasion. Ahmad Shah Abdali took full advantage of the internal
disputes. The Mughals, Rajputs, Rohillas and the Marathas have not
combined together to face their common enemy. Had they combined
together it would have been not so easy for Abdali to crush Marathas.
The Marathas had interfered in the internal affairs of the Rajputana
states (present day Rajasthan) and levied heavy taxes and huge fines on
them. They had also made huge territorial and monetary claims upon
Awadh. Their raids in the Jat territory had resulted in the loss of trust
of Jat chiefs like Suraj Mal. They had, therefore, to fight their enemies
Self-Instructional
24 Material
alone. The main reason for the failure of Marathas was that they went Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
to war without good allies.
• Distance of Punjab from south: Though Marathas had conquered
portions of Punjab but it was difficult to rule on Punjab from south
NOTES
because Marathas did not want to be away from their homes in the
south. It made the task of recapturing of lost territories by Ahmad Shah
easier. The Marathas did not care to defend northern frontier properly.
Had the Marathas settled in Punjab, Abdali’s success would have been
doubtful.
• Maratha relation with Ruhelas: Marathas did not have good relations
with Ruhelas because the Mughals had gained support from Scindia
and Holker against Ruhelas. Under these circumstances, the Ruhelas
invited Ahamad Shah Abdali to invade India.
• Strong position of Afghans: After the murder of Nadir Shah, Abdali
ascended the throne and improved his power. In a short period of one
year, he was strong enough to invade India again and again.
• Dream of the Marathas to establish a Hindu State: Knowing the
weaknesses of the Mughals, they thought it is practicable to establish
a Hindu State on the ruins of the Mughal Empire. But Abdali never
wanted that their dreams should be materialized.
Third Battle of Panipat (1761)
At Panipat, the two rival armies stood entrenched, face to face, for more
than two months. There were skirmishes and minor battles. The Afghan
cavalry patrols dominated the environs of the Maratha camp and cut off its
communications and also food supply. Gradually, despair and terror seized
the straying Marathas. They decided to launch a direct attack on the Afghans
when there was no food for men and no grass for horses, and when filth and
stench ‘made the confines of the entrenchment a living hell’.
The Bhau’s army marched out to battle on January 15, 1761. The battle
actually began about four hours after daybreak. Vishwas Ruo was shot dead
at quarter past two. Soon after, the Bhau was also killed. Among the leading
chiefs who met death were Jankoji Scindia, Tukoji Scindia and Ibrahim Khan
Gardi. Mahadji Scindia received wounds, which claimed his life. ‘It was a
nation-wide disaster like a flooded field. An entire generation of leaders was
cut off at one stroke. Apart from those who fell on the field, many fugitives
lost their lives during their long flight without food or rest. About 50,000
men and women were saved by the kindness and hospitality of Suraj Mal.
The crushing defeat of the Marathas is easily explained. Numerically,
the Afghans had considerable superiority. Against 60,000 Afghans and their
Indian allies actually present in the field, supported by 80,000 behind the
fighting line, the Bhau had 45,000 troops in the field and 15,000 Pindaris in
Self-Instructional
Material 25
Later Mughals and the the rear. The Afghan army had better training and discipline, and it was better
Rise of the Marathas
organized. Moreover, a famished army on less than half-dead country mares
met the finest Afghan cavalry. Abdali had superiority in artillery; he employed
‘the most efficient mobile artillery known in that age’. Although the field
NOTES guns of the Marathas were of larger caliber than those of the Afghans, they
could not be dragged forward with the advancing troops and became useless
as the battle developed. The Bhau had no worthy and dependable lieutenants
as comparable to Abdali’s front-rank officers. Malhar Rao Holkar did not
exchange fire till after the contest at the centre had been decided in Abdali’s
favour; and at the last stage he fled away. Abdali was a far greater military
leader and strategist than the Bhau. The defeat became virtually inevitable
after the Bhau’s postponement of battle for two and a half months. He kept
his army on the defensive in a besieged camp until starvation compelled him
to make the last desperate effort for escape.
From the political point of view the defeat was largely due to the
alienation of the Rajputs and the Jats and the failure to neutralize Shuja-ud-
Daula and Najib-ud-Daula. While half of Abdali’s army was composed of
troops furnished by his Indian allies, the valiant Rajputs and the Jats did not
fight on the Maratha side. The clue to this situation lies in ‘the total diplomatic
failure on the part of the Peshwa who dictated, and the Bhau who carried
out, his North Indian policy’.
Consequences of Third Battle of Panipat
Some modern Maratha writers argue that although the Marathas suffered
terrible losses in manpower at Panipat, the battle did not destroy the Maratha
power in North India nor did it essentially shake the Maratha Empire as a
whole. Abdali made several unsuccessful efforts to conclude peace with
the Peshwa and Surajmal, and in the following years he failed to crush the
Sikhs in the Punjab. There was a revival of the Maratha power in North
India under Peshwa Madhav Rao I (1761–1972). After the death of Najib-
ud-daula (1770) who ‘administered Delhi as Abdali’s agent after Panipat, the
Marathas .restored the exiled Mughal emperor Shah Alam II to the capital
of his ancestors (1972). Mahadji Scindia occupied Delhi in 1788 and it was
from his successor Daulat Rao Scindia that the English wrested the imperial
capital in 1803. In South India the Marathas secured victories against Haider
Ali and the Nizam, S.G. Sardesai maintains that ‘the disaster at Panipat was
indeed like a natural visitation destroying life, but leading to no decisive
political consequences’. But the views of Sardesai and the others were too
simplistic. Undoubtedly the disaster at Panipat was the greatest loss to the
Marathas in manpower and personal prestige both. The Maratha dream of
being a successor to the great Mughals was lost forever. Certainly Panipat
paved the way for the rise of the British power, which became a paramount
power in India by the close of the eighteenth century.
Self-Instructional
26 Material
Peshwa Balaji Bajirao could not bear the shock of the awful catastrophe Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
at Panipat and died six months after the battle (June 1761). During the post-
Panipat era, the links of the Peshwa with the Maratha Confederacy also grew
very loose. In the words of Kashiraj Pandit, who was an eyewitness to the
Third Battle of Panipat, ‘It was verily doomsday for the Maratha people’. NOTES
Self-Instructional
28 Material
affairs at Poona and Mahadji Scindia busied himself in the north. Both of Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
them served the Maratha state faithfully. It is pointed out by Sardesai that if
Mahadji Scindia and Nana Phadnavis had not acted in concert and brought
all the resources to bear on the First Maratha war, there would have been an
end of Maratha power. NOTES
Mahadji Scindia and Nana Phadnavis worked in close co-operation
during the First Anglo-Maratha war, faced the British challenge united and
succeeded in thwarting the British design to curb the Marathas. But Mahadji
Scindia entered into the treaty of Salbai without the concurrence of Nana
Phadnavis. By this treaty Mahadji Scindia became virtually independent
and was recognized by the East India Company as mediator between it and
Peshwas and guarantor of the honourable peace with the Marathas.
Mahadji and Nana Phadnavis had different physical features and mental
cast. The life of Mahadji was a long period of strenuous activity. His life can
be divided into four parts. During the first part up to 1761, he was an obscure
figure over-shadowed by his brilliant brothers. From 1761 to 1772 his life
was one of the apprenticeship in which he acquired the supreme fitness,
which later on helped him to co-operate with Nana Phadnavis to defeat the
English during the first Anglo-Maratha war. During the third part, he gained
valuable experience of war and diplomacy on his own initiative which he put
in actual test later on. During the fourth part he created the kingdom which
he left for his children.
The private life of Mahadji was pure and free from blemish. He was
free from caste and religious bias. He was equally respected by the Muslims
and the Hindus. He employed Brahmans, Marathas and Mahars. The Saraswat
Brahmans attained special distinction in his service as soldiers and diplomats.
Mahadji was always careful and faithful to the Peshwa family. He never
tried to assert his independence. It was unfortunate that Nana Phadnavis was
jealous of Mahadji and always tried to keep him away from Poona. Mahadji
did not manage his financial affairs properly. He borrowed a large amount
of money from all sources. A lot of money was pocketed by unscrupulous
middlemen. There was confusion and misappropriation. Money was poured
into useless channels. Lands were deserted and cultivation was stopped at
many places. Robberies became frequent. Life became insecure. Mahadji
agreed to pay the expenses of the Mughal armies but he had no money to do so.
Nana Phadnavis was born in 1742. He worked very hard at his desk.
He attended to all the details of the administration. He did not like the open
methods of Mahadji and always worked in secret. He was usually reasonable
and fair in his dealings. He was afraid to commit treachery or wrong. He
was strict in punctually carrying on work. However he did not possess
self-confidence of Mahadji. He took counsel with all separately, but acted
Self-Instructional
Material 29
Later Mughals and the according to his own considered judgment. He was not at all loved as he
Rise of the Marathas
was a stern task master. He was often in danger of assassination. On about
20 occasions, he had miraculous escape from attempts on his life.
Nana Phadnavis lacked military leadership and that was a great
NOTES
disadvantage in the rough times in which he lived. Nana Phadnavis did not
possess a conciliatory spirit. He gradually removed all the members, one
by one, of the Bara–Bhai council and concentrated all the power in his own
hands. If, instead of that, Nana Phadnavis had shared powers with others, there
would have been better prospects for the future of the Marathas. It has been
suggested that if Nana Phadnavis had taken into confidence all the Maratha
chiefs and pooled together all the resources of the Marathas, the Marathas
would not have fallen as they did under Bajirao II.
According to Sardesai, Nana would have acquired a much higher place
in history if he had subordinated his love of power and money to the service
of the nation.
Nana had too much love for power. It is suggested that if he had retired
from politics in 1795, he would have rendered a great service to the Maratha
cause. Another criticism against Nana is that he loved money too much.
Self-Instructional
30 Material
4. The causes of the third Anglo-Maratha war were as follows: Later Mughals and the
Rise of the Marathas
• Resentment of the Marathas against the loss of their freedom to the
British
• Rigid control exercised by the British residents on the Marathas NOTES
chiefs
5. The Third Battle of Panipat took place on 14 January 1761, at Panipat
(Haryana).
1.7 SUMMARY
2.0 INTRODUCTION
In the previous unit, you learnt about the rise of the regional kingdoms in
India in the 18th century. With the decline of the Roman Empire, around the
7th century, the commercial contact between the East and the West suffered.
The geographical discoveries in the last quarter of the 15th century deeply
affected the commercial relations of different countries of the world and
produced far-reaching consequences in their history. The European nations
now embarked on finding a new sea route towards the East. The first efforts
were made by the Portuguese. Prince Henry of Portugal, nicknamed the
‘Navigator’, devoted his whole life to encouraging voyages for the discovery
of a sea route to India.
In 1487, Bartholomew Diaz reached the Cape of Good Hope, and
following his route Vasco da Gama, another Portuguese navigator, reached the
shores of Calicut in 1498. Thus, the long-sought direct trade link with India
was discovered. There was perhaps no event during the middle age, which
had such far-reaching repercussions on the civilized world as the opening
of the sea route to India.
After the discovery of India by Vasco Da Gama, the Portuguese tried
to establish a trade link and their rule in India. Later, the Dutch, English and
Self-Instructional
Material 33
Advent of the Europeans the French companies came to India. The Dutch diverted their attention to
Indonesia and Portugal. Since they were unable to compete with the English
and the French companies, their rule became confined to Dadar, Goa, Daman
and Diu.
NOTES
In this unit, you will study about the advent of the Europeans—the
Portuguese and the Dutch, and the British East India Company and the
French. You will also study the reasons that led to the Anglo-French rivalry.
2.1 OBJECTIVES
The sea route from Europe to India was discovered by Vasco Da Gama, a
Portuguese explorer. He reached the Port of Calicut on 17 May 1498 and
was received by the Hindu ruler of Calicut, the Samudiri, who was known by
the title of Zamorin. This led to the establishment of the Portuguese trading
stations at Calicut, Cochin and Cannanore. Cochin was the early capital of
the Portuguese in India. Later, Goa became its capital and the Portuguese
became a significant naval power on the Indian waters.
After the discovery by Vasco da Gama, the Portuguese made a lot
of efforts to use the commercial potentialities of Asia, especially India.
Local rulers who were ruling at that time allowed them to set up factories
for the development of trade and commerce. They initiated propagation
of the Christian faith, inter-marriages, conversions and settlements of the
Europeans. New social groups emerged due to these activities. Many rulers
made political and commercial alliances with them. When other European
nations saw the successful commercial activities of the Portuguese, they also
felt encouraged to indulge in trading activities with Asia. Many European
powers came to India, but you will study about two prominent powers–the
Portuguese and the Dutch.
Self-Instructional
34 Material
Advent of the Europeans
Check Your Progress
1. Who discovered the sea route to India?
2. Name the early capital of Portuguese India? NOTES
3. When did Vasco Da Gama reach the port of Calicut?
The discovery of the sea route to India by Vasco Da Gama, one of the most
successful explorers in the Age of Discovery and the commander of the first
ships to sail directly from Europe to India, ushered the era of the Portuguese
trade in India. He returned to Portugal from India in 1499, with cargo worth
sixty times his expenses. Zamorin treated the Portuguese mariner in a friendly
manner, which encouraged them to open up commercial relations with Calicut
within two years. In 1502, he established a factory at Cochin. The king of
Cochin let Vasco Da Gama build the first fort. He was followed by Alfonso
de Albuquerque, who arrived in India in 1503.
In 1505, the Portuguese appointed a governor named Francisco de
Almeidato who used to look after their affairs in India. He built forts at
Anjadiva, Cannanore and Cochin. Alfonso de Albuquerque was the real
founder of the Portuguese Empire in the East. In 1510, Albuquerque occupied
the port of Goa from the Bijapur Sultan by a sudden attack and arranged for
its defence by strengthening its forts. He was a capable ruler and played an
important role in the abolition of the ‘sati’ system.
Albuquerque encouraged the Portuguese men to marry Indian women so
that he could establish the authority of the Portuguese in India. He, however,
ill-treated the Muslims. When Albuquerque died in 1515, the Portuguese had
established themselves as the strongest naval power in India.
Nino da Cunha (1529–1538) transferred his capital from Cochin to Goa
(1530) and acquired Diu and Bassein (1534) from Bahadur Shah of Gujarat.
The famous Jesuit Saint Francisco Xavier arrived in India with Martin Alfonso
de Souza during this time (1542–1545). Under Albuquerque’s successors,
the Portuguese occupied Diu, Daman, Salsette, Bassein, Chaul and Bombay,
San Thome (near Madras) and Hugli (in Bengal).
Portuguese occupation of Diu compelled the Arabs to withdraw from
the Indian trade. The Arab merchants of Calicut were apprehensive of the
Portuguese designs from the very beginning. The Zamorins, the hereditary
royal title used by the Hindu rulers of the medieval Kingdom of Calicut,
supported them against the Europeans. On the other hand, Calicut’s rivalry
with Cannanore and Cochin forced them to cultivate friendship with the
Self-Instructional
Material 35
Advent of the Europeans Portuguese. Besides, they forced Cochin to sell all its products through
Calicut. To retaliate, this was an apt opportunity for Cochin. Its ruler allowed
the Europeans to establish a factory in Cochin. The Portuguese exploited
the situation to their advantage. They realized that Calicut was a major
NOTES hindrance in controlling the Malabar trade. Hence, throughout the 16th
century, the Portuguese carried on armed clashes against Calicut. With a
view to driving out the Portuguese, the Zamorins allied with Bijapur, Gujarat,
Ahmednagar and Egypt. However, they did not succeed. At any rate, the
Zamorins continued to harass the Portuguese on land. Even on the seas the
Portuguese found it difficult to destroy Calicut’s naval power, which was
organized under the celebrated Marakkar family of admirals. From 1528 to
1598, the Portuguese–Zamorin clashes were mainly confined to the seas. It
was only in 1599 that the Portuguese succeeded in making a breakthrough
against the Marakkars.
The Portuguese control was effective at only those places where they
had built their fortresses. But their highhandedness and cruelty compelled
even these allies to part with them in spite of their traditional rivalries with
Calicut. For example, the Cannanore rulers, who supported the Portuguese
against Calicut in the early years, later supported the Zamorin in 1558 against
the Portuguese. Similarly the King of Tanur, who had become a Christian and
supported the Portuguese against Calicut, turned his back to the Europeans.
In fact, it was only Cochin and Quilon with whom Portuguese succeeded in
maintaining a lasting friendship.
Portuguese settlements on the west coast consisted of the following
places:
• Calicut (1500)
• Cochin (1501)
• Cannanore (1503)
• Quilon (1503)
• Cheliyam (1531)
• Rahole (1535)
• Krengannore (1536)
• Mangalore (1568)
• Hanawer (1568)
• Diu (1509)
• Goa (1510)
• Surat (1599)
• Daman (1599)
Self-Instructional
36 Material
Portuguese settlements on the east coast consisted of the following Advent of the Europeans
places:
• Meliyapur
• Chittagong NOTES
• Hugli
• Bandel
The Portuguese power continued to be strong till the middle of the 16th
century but with the death of Governor D.J. Castro, the Portuguese power
in India began to decline.
2.3.1 Factories, Fortresses and Commercial Arrangements
The Italian merchants had established warehouses (factories) in Cairo and
Alexandria to carry on trade and commerce. Following this example the
Portuguese, too, founded factories on the coastal regions of India and certain
other places in Asia. A factory could be defined as a commercial organization
having an autonomous existence set up within the country with which another
country had commercial relations. Each factory had an officer who was
assisted by a number of persons appointed by the Portuguese king. He was
the agent of the crown to promote economic, financial and administrative
activities of all sorts. In all situations Portuguese national interests were of
paramount consideration. Factories also required protection from hostile
elements. Therefore, to consolidate and strengthen their power the Portuguese
also attempted to fortify their factories. A chain of factories and fortresses
came into existence for the support of the maritime trade conducted by the
Portuguese. These fortified centres were expected to serve the Portuguese
to check the movements of vessels owned by others and to function as areas
for the reserve of military and naval forces. The system of factories had a
great role to play in the commercial arrangements in the period beginning
with the 16th century till the mid-18th century.
Western India
In the Malabar region, the Portuguese established their first factory in 1500 at
Calicut. However, it could not run for a long time because the Zomorins were
against the establishment of such factories. In 1525, finally, the Portuguese
closed down their factory at Calicut. This did not stop the Portuguese to
establish factories in other places, thus, they establsihed factories in other
places such as Cochin (1501), Cannanore (1503), Quilon (1503), Chaliyam
(1531), Rachol (1535) Crangannore (1536), and Mangalore and Honaver
(1568). Later, in the second decade of the 16th century, NizamulMulk of
Ahmednagar granted the permission to the Portuguese to construct a factory
at Chaul.
Self-Instructional
Material 37
Advent of the Europeans In the north-west, Cambay (Khambayat) was the main port of call on
the route from Malacca connecting Calicut, the ports of the Red Sea and the
Persian Gulf with the ports of the Mediterranean. Apart from this, factories
were established by the Portuguese at Diu (1509, 1535), Bassin (1534), Surat,
NOTES Daman (1599) and Bhavnagar. Thus, almost the entire coastal belt of Malabar,
Konkan and north-west India came under the influence of the Portuguese.
Eastern India
The Portuguese navigators came across several merchants from the eastern
coast of India who had trade relations with other South-East Asian centers. The
Portuguese collected textiles and other commodities from various port-towns
of the Coromandel Coast. Some of these port-towns were Masulipatnam,
Pulict, San Thome, Pondicherry, Cuddalore, Porto Novo and Nagapatnam.
Meilapore known as San Thome to the north of Nagapatnam was also a
Portuguese settlement, which was surrounded by walls. The Portuguese also
established a fortress at Manar in 1518 on the western coast of Ceylon. This
fortress, though not on the main land of India, could contain the movement
of vessels to the east from the western side of the subcontinent.
The Portuguese also tried to establish commercial contacts with Bengal
from AD 1517. The first effort in this direction was made at Chittagong–the
chief port of Bengal during this period. After much manoeuvering, they at
last obtained permission from Mahmud Shah, the king of Bengal, to establish
factories at Chittagong and Satgaon in 1536. The second settlement at
Hugli was granted to the Portuguese by Akbar in 1579–1580. The third one
was established at Bandel with the permission of Shah Jahan in 1633. Yet,
during the 16th century there were no fortresses on the eastern coast. Still
the settlements, with a few artilleries, were able to oversee the movement of
vessels carrying commodities.
South-East Asia
With a view to having an exclusive domination over the trade in the Indian
Ocean regions, the Portuguese found it necessary to bring under their control
the important trade centres in South-East Asia.
They established a few fortresses at Colombo and Batticaloa–all in
Ceylon. Subsequently, contacts with Java, Siam, Moluccas, Martaban and
Pegu were established. From 1518, the Portuguese started a settlement in
China on the island of Sancheu. It was here that St. Francis Xavier, a Christian
missionary, died in 1552.
The beginning of factories in various parts of the subcontinent of India
and neighbouring Asiatic kingdoms provided an environment suitable for
long distance trade to the Portuguese.
Self-Instructional
38 Material
2.3.2 Commodities of Export and Import Advent of the Europeans
The chief aim of the Portuguese in discovering the sea route connecting the
East with Portugal was to collect spices directly from the places of production
rather than from the hands of the intermediaries like the Italian or the Muslim NOTES
traders. Pepper became a necessary ingredient in European food. The demand
for pepper went on increasing, especially for the sake of preserving meat.
Besides, ginger, cinnamon, cardamom, mace, nutmeg and several exotic
herbs from the East had a market in Europe.
A special variety of textiles like muslin and chintz and few animals
like elephants, too, found their way to Portugal. The commodities which the
Portuguese had were not acceptable to eastern nobility, thus, they did not
have sufficient commodities to give in exchange to acquire commodities
available in the East. They bought silver from the West so that they could
buy commodities of the East.
Pepper was the most popular commodity which was traded from
Malabar and the Konkan coasts. Ginger, white sandalwood, red sandalwood,
sealing wax, indigo, spikenard, tamarind, areca nut, textiles, ivory and
turmeric were also traded from the Malabar Konkan coasts to Portugal. In
1498, the Zamorin of Calicut asked Vasco da Gama to send gold, silver, coral
and scarlet from Portugal. This shows that these commodities were imported
to the Malabar and Konkan coasts.
In 1513, Alfonso de Albuquerque gave a list of commodities to the
king of Portugal which he felt could be sold in India. This included items
like coral, copper, quicksilver, vermilion, velvet, carpets, saffron, rose-water
and clothes of various kinds. All these items were not from Portugal, but
the Portuguese started procuring them from various places, like Flanders,
Germany, England and other European countries.
Indigo, textiles, silk, handicrafts made of tortoise shells, taffeta,
satin, chintz, malmal, and tripped cotton clothes were some of the things
that were exported to Portugal. Among these items, silks were produced
in places like Burhanpur and Balaghat, chintz in Cambay, sandalwood in
Coromandel, spikenard in Bengal, calico in the vicinity of Daman, Cambay
and Balaghat. The volume of export of textile products increased in the 17th
century. Copper, broadcloths and cash in various denominations were sent to
north-western coast. In addition to this, a few products such as pepper and
other spices from the South were also taken to north-western India for the
purchase of textiles. The most expensive item of export from this region was
pearl, chiefly collected from the pearl fishery coast. Cotton and silk textiles
and embroideries from Bengal were exported to the Portuguese. Ginger in
conserve, myrobalans, butter, oil, wax and rice were the other commodities
that were collected from Bengal.
Self-Instructional
Material 39
Advent of the Europeans The Portuguese brought brocades, damasks, satins, taffetas, cloves,
nutmegs, mace, camphor, cinnamon, pepper, chests, writing desks, valuable
pearls and jewels to Bengal. Most of these were from Malacca, China,
Borneo, Ceylon and Malabar Coast. Sea-shells or cowries from Maldives,
NOTES white and red sandalwood from Solor and Timor were also taken to Bengal
by the Portuguese.
Various types of spices were collected from Ceylon and other South-
East. Asian regions. For example, Malacca and Java produced pepper for
export. Moluccas produced good variety of cloves. The best sort of cinnamon
was produced by Ceylon for export to Lisbon. Timor and Tennaserim
produced good variety of sandalwood, which was carried by the Portuguese to
Lisbon. Sumatra provided sealing wax for Portuguese consumption. Borneo,
Sumatra and China produced good variety of camphor for export to Lisbon.
Benzoin from Pegu was also taken by the Portuguese to Portugal. Rhubarb
was carried by the Portuguese from China.
In return, the Portuguese took gold, silver, cash and textiles to South-
East Asian regions. Most of these textile goods were manufactured in India.
Finances of the Portuguese trade
Taking into account the details of the Portuguese enterprise on the Malabar
coast in the period between 1500 and 1506, an Italian estimated in 1506 that
the total investment needed for conducting trade with the East was 170,000
ducats every year.
The king of Portugal provided only one-fourth of this amount and the
rest was raised by the merchants and financiers who collaborated with the
Portuguese king. In 1500, he issued an order permitting natives as well as
foreign merchants to send their own vessels to the East. Revenues collected in
the form of booty, tributes and taxes levied on ships of the private merchants
also provided funds for the conduct of trade with India.
European merchant–financiers
Italians, especially the Florentines, occupied an important position among
the financiers in the 16th century. Most of the Italian financiers concluded
contracts with the Portuguese king. They supplied cash or materials to the
king at Lisbon. The king used them to purchase pepper and other commodities
from India. These commodities were given to these financiers at Lisbon
in view of the contracts signed. However, some of the financiers also sent
their own factors to India. Cash or commodities were always sent under the
supervision of the Portuguese authorities to the East.
Indian commodities also attracted the German financiers and merchants.
The Portuguese king welcomed them with open arms for he was finding it
difficult to finance the Oriental enterprise on his own. Since copper was given
Self-Instructional in part-payment for Indian commodities, especially pepper and other spices,
40 Material
large quantity of copper was needed for transactions. Some of the German Advent of the Europeans
merchant financiers like the Fuggers had a monopoly over the production of
copper in Europe. This turned out to be of great use for trade with India. The
German financiers could fit out their vessels, entrust cash and commodities
to the India House in Lisbon to be taken to India under the Portuguese flag NOTES
and buy the commodities from Lisbon according to the terms and conditions
of the contracts signed.
During the second half of the 16th century both the Welsers and the
Fuggers joined the expedition along with Giraldo Paris and Juan Battista
Rovalesco for the purchase of 30,000 quintals of pepper directly from India
and agreed to send an amount of 1,70,000 crusados to India annually. Thus,
the firms of the Welsers and the Fugger’s continued to be closely associated
with the trade of India. There were a few Portuguese merchants who in their
private capacity participated in the trade with India during the 16th century.
State officials posted in India were also allowed to participate in the Indian
trade. According to their position in the hierarchy, they had some rights to
take certain quantity of commodities to Portugal, in lieu of remuneration in
cash. The details of their entitlements were spelt out in their appointment
orders and this formed part of their emoluments.
Indian merchants and rulers
Several Indian merchants supplied commodities to the Portuguese on credit
when the latter did not have cash or commodities to furnish in exchange.
The merchants of Cochin, especially the Marakkars, were of great help to
the Portuguese in this respect and their services were gratefully remembered
by the Portuguese officials.
Sometimes, the Portuguese king was persuaded to grant some privileges
to such merchants. Khwaja Shamsuddin Gilani, who had settled down in
Cannanore after service at the kingdom of Bijapur, was often helpful to the
Portuguese in finding funds on loan.
Some of the local rulers stood surety for the Portuguese when they
did not have sufficient money to pay the merchants for the commodities
bought by them. For example, the king of Cochin came forward to help
the Portuguese several times making the required volume of commodities
available to them on credit.
The Portuguese had banned all other vessels from plying on the Indian
Ocean and the Arabian Sea. They used to confiscate the ships which carried
commodities without a pass (cartaz) from the Portuguese officials. All the
ships were required to procure pass from the Portuguese officials in case
something had to be shipped to India or other Asian countries. Even rulers
of India like Akbar and his successors, Nilam Shah of Ahmednagar, Adil
Shah of Bijapur, kings of Cochin, the Zamorins of Calicut and the rulers
of Cannanore used to procure cartaz when they had to send ships to some Self-Instructional
Material 41
Advent of the Europeans places. The fees charged for the issuance of passes also became a source
of income for them. Though only a small amount was charged as fees but
ships who wished to take passes had to visit ports where the custom houses
of the Portuguese asked them to pay tax. Also, the rulers who were defeated
NOTES by the Portuguese were forced to pay them some money or something in
kind. The Portuguese used this method a lot of times to procure money for
investment. Thus, the Portuguese used a number of ways to earn money for
running their trade in India.
Nature of the Portuguese trade with India
Right from the time Portuguese arrived at Calicut they had demanded
that other merchants, Indian as well as foreign, should be ousted and
a complete monopoly over trade be granted to them. Portuguese ships
equipped with arms and ammunitions threatened other merchants and
confiscated their merchandise and vessels. By 1501, the Portuguese king
assumed a grandiloquent title showing his proprietary right over the Indian
Ocean regions. The title proclaimed him Lord of Navigation, Conquest and
Commerce of Ethiopia, Arabia, Persia and India.
In 1502, the Portuguese demanded an exclusive right over trade at
Calicut to which the Zamorin, the king of Calicut, did not yield. Vasco da
Gama declared war on ships plying on the Arabian Sea and Indian Ocean.
He introduced an expedient under which those ships which carried a cartaz
duly signed by the Portuguese authorities, namely the royal factor, were not
to be attacked. This certificate was first issued in 1502.
Everyone who was involved in maritime activities had to procure cartaz
from the Portuguese. There was a condition that they cannot load certain
items on their ship such as pepper, ginger, ship pitch, horses, sulphur, lead,
coir and cinnamon. The Portuguese had monopoly over these items.
Monopoly trade
Till the end of the 15th century, merchants from various quarters of the world
were found on the coastal regions of India engaged in trade and commerce.
Vasco Da Gama reported in 1498 that there were merchants from Mecca,
Ceylon, Turkey, Egypt, Persia, Ethiopia and various parts of India at the port
of Calicut. It is well-known that Chinese merchants as well as merchants
from the Red Sea areas used to come to the Indian ports. There is no record
of any group of merchants demanding exclusive right of trade in general,
nor of any attempts made to declare a few or all commodities set apart for
anybody. But, with the arrival of the Portuguese, this state of affairs underwent
considerable change. Kings were pressurized to forbid other merchants
from trading with their ports. Similarly, certain commodities were declared
forbidden to be traded by others.
Self-Instructional
42 Material
In other words, the Portuguese demanded monopoly of trade. The Advent of the Europeans
treaties concluded with the Indian rulers specifically mentioned this. The
setting up of Portuguese fortresses at strategic places, surveillance by their
patrolling vessels, and the insistence on passes for other ships were the
attempts made to establish monopoly of trade in Asian waters. NOTES
Self-Instructional
44 Material
Advent of the Europeans
2.4 THE DUTCH
After the Portuguese, the Dutch also felt encouraged to trade in India. They
wanted to have direct access to the spice market of India. To fulfil their NOTES
ambition, they undertook many voyages to India from 1596 to 1602. In 1602,
they established an organization named the United East India Company. The
Dutch had conflicts with the Portuguese and the English merchants.
In 1602, the Dutch Parliament passed a Charter. This Charter led to the
formation of the Dutch East India Company. As per this Charter, the company
had the authority to make wars in order to acquire territories. It also had the
power to make treaties and build fortresses.
Establishment of factories
Many factories were set up by the Dutch. Some of the factories were set up
at Masulipatam (1605), Pulicat (1610), Surat (1616), Bimilipatam (1641),
Karikal (1645), Chinsura (1653) and Cochin (1663). In 1668, the company
set up factories in Kasimbazar, Patna, Balasore and Negapatam as well. After
the establishment of these factories, they became the most dominant power
in the European trade with the East. Till 1690, Pulicat was the main centre
of their trading activities. After 1690, Negapatam became the main centre
of the Dutch merchants.
The Dutch lost the Battle of Bedera to the English in 1759 and conceded
to the English after this battle.
Although there were occasional amicable settlements between the
English and the Dutch, hostilities were renewed when in 1623 the Dutch
massacred ten Englishmen and nine Japanese at Amboyna, which marked
the climax of the hatred of the Dutch towards the English as well as the other
trading nations.
The Dutch in their bid for expansion of trade, came into conflicts with
Mir Jumla and during 1672–74, they repeatedly obstructed the communication
between Surat and other English settlements in Bombay and even captured
three English vessels on the Bay of Bengal.
Between 1580 and 1640, Portugal was under Spain. There were
hostilities going on between England and Spain, which naturally meant
hostilities between the English and the Portuguese. With the Treaty of Madrid
in 1630, commercial hostilities between the English and the Portuguese
diminished although they did not cease altogether. When in 1640 Portugal
became independent of Spain, the relations between the English and
Portuguese further improved and the English right to trade in the East was
conceded by the Portuguese. This facilitated the conclusion of treaty with
the English in 1661 by which the English agreed to support the Portuguese
against the Dutch. Self-Instructional
Material 45
Advent of the Europeans Finally, the rivalry of the trading companies ousted the Dutch and the
Portuguese from the Indian trading market.
After the Dutch and the Portuguese, the English and the French companies
were the only competitors for trade in India.
2.5.1 The French
Compagnie des Indes was the first French company to establish trading
relations with India. Louis XIV, the then king of France, granted charter to
this company in 1664. After this, the planning of this French company was
done by Colbert, the then finance minister of France.
Under this company, the first factory was established in 1668 at Surat.
The founder of the first factory was Coron, a Dutchman in the French Service.
The next factory was set up in 1669 at Masulipattinam. In 1674, Pondicherry
became their capital. From 1690 to 1692, the French set up one more factory
at Chandra Nagar, Bengal, on the bank of river Hugli. Mahe(now Malabar)
and Karikal (now Coromandel) were acquired by the French in 1725 and
1739 respectively.
The company was given a loan of 3,000,000 livres by the king. For this
loan, the king did not charge any interest. The company had the monopoly for
25 years to conduct trading activities from the Cape of Good Hope to India
and the South Seas. Aurangzeb gave a firmanin the favour of the company
according to which the company had the permission to conduct trading
activities in the Gujarat coast as well.
2.5.2 The British
The East India Company, initially named The Governor and Company of
Merchants of London Trading in the East Indies was granted a royal charter
by Queen Elizabeth in 1600. The company was given rights for carrying
out trading activities in the East. Later, the company became popular as the
English East India Company.
For many years, the company traded only with Java, Sumatra and the
Moluccas. At this time, they dealt only in the trading of spices. In 1608,
Captain William Hawkins met Jehangir. He showed him the letter which
he brought from James I, king of England. In this letter, James I requested
Jehangir to allow the English merchants to establish their shops in the
country. The merchants of the Portuguese and Surat strongly opposed the
establishment of the English merchants in India. Thus, Jehangir had to decline
the request of James I.
Self-Instructional
46 Material
In 1609, however, Jehangir gave permission to the English to set up their Advent of the Europeans
factory at Surat. The company also received permission from the Sultan of
Golkunda to trade in Golkunda. However, for this the sultan made a condition
that the company will have to pay fixed custom duty of 500 pagodas per year.
In 1651, NawabShuja-ud-Din permitted the company to continue their trading NOTES
activities for which the company would be obliged to pay `3,000 annually.
In 1656, the English was given the security of trade as well. According
to this directive, the English received permission to carry on their import and
export activities on land as well water without the need to pay customs or tolls.
In 1691, Ibrahim Khan, the successor of Shaista Khan, issued a firman
in favour of the English. According to this firman, the English were given
permission to carry out duty-free trade but they were asked to pay `3,000
annually. After 1691, the company prospered by leaps and bounds in Bengal.
In 1696, the company gave an excuse that it is at risk from Sobha Singh, a
zamindar of Burdwan as he might rebel against the company. With the help
of this excuse, the company got the rights for the fortification of their factory.
The zamindari of three villages—Sutanuti, Govindapur and Kalighata or
Kalikata—was given to the English in 1698. In return, they were to pay `1,200
to SabarnaChaudhari who was the zamindar of these three villages before
the zamindari was granted to the English. In 1700, a separate President and
Council took charge of the factories of Bengal. Also, the English constructed
a fort. This fort was named after King William II of England. Later, this fort
became the seat of the Council which took charge of the factories. The first
President and Governor of this Council was Sir Charles Eyre.
In 1714, the English sent John Surman to the Delhi court to arrange
all trading facilities for the East India Company. When he met Emperor
Farukhsiyar, the emperor issued a firmanby which the company was granted
permission to carry on custom free trade in Bengal, Madras and Bombay. In
addition to this, the company was also allowed to mint its own coins.
2.5.3 The French vs the English
In 1749, the French company seemed to be a serious rival of the English
Company, but it could not survive for a long time due to the following reasons:
• The French Company was controlled by the Government but the
Government was not too interested in the company’s affairs. On the
other hand, the English company was a private concern.
• The English company had more money as compared to the French
company. The area of the English trade was also vast.
• The English were strong on the waters as well. They had big ships and
their merchants made regular voyage for trading activities.
Self-Instructional
Material 47
Advent of the Europeans War between the English and the French
From 1746 to 1763, English East India Company and French East India
Company fought with each other in India. These wars are known as Carnatic
NOTES wars. They fought with each other in order to get monopoly over trade in India.
The Indian rulers, the Mughals, the subedar of Deccan did not participate
in these wars.
1. The sea route from Europe to India was discovered by Vasco Da Gama.
2. Cochin was the early capital of the Portuguese in India.
3. Vasco da Gama reached the Port of Calicut on 17 May 1498.
4. In 1502, he established a factory at Cochin.
5. Alfonso de Albuquerque was the real founder of the Portuguese Empire
in the East.
6. Albuquerque encouraged the Portuguese men to marry Indian women
so that he could establish the authority of the Portuguese in India.
7. Portuguese occupation of Diu compelled the Arabs to withdraw from
the Indian trade. The Arab merchants of Calicut were apprehensive of
the Portuguese designs from the very beginning.
8. Portuguese established settlements on the west and the east coast. The
areas in the west coast consisted of
• Calicut (1500)
• Cochin (1501)
• Cannanore (1503)
• Quilon (1503)
Self-Instructional
48 Material
• Cheliyam (1531) Advent of the Europeans
• Rahole (1535)
• Krengannore (1536)
• Mangalore (1568) NOTES
• Hanawer (1568)
• Diu (1509)
• Goa (1510)
• Surat (1599)
• Daman (1599)
In east coast, the places consisted of:
• Meliyapur
• Chittagong
• Hugli
• Bandel
9. The Portuguese also tried to establish commercial contacts with Bengal
from AD 1517.
10. Pepper was the most popular commodity which was traded from
Malabar and the Konkan coasts. Ginger, white sandalwood, red
sandalwood, sealing wax, indigo, spikenard, tamarind, areca nut,
textiles, ivory and turmeric were also traded from the Malabar Konkan
coasts to Portugal.
11. In 1602, the Dutch established an organization named the United East
India Company.
12. The first French factory established in Indian was in 1668 at Surat.
13. Initially the English East India Company was called the Governor and
Company of Merchants of London Trading in the East Indies.
14. The Portuguese merchants and those from Surat had strongly opposed
the establishment of the English merchant in India. This forced Jehangir
had to decline the request of England’s King James I.
15. The English was given the security of trade in 1656.
16. The British was given the zamindari of three villages —Sutanuti,
Govindapur and Kalighata—in 1698.
2.7 SUMMARY
Self-Instructional
50 Material
• Right from the time Portuguese arrived at Calicut they had demanded Advent of the Europeans
EUROPEAN POWERS IN
NOTES
INDIA
Structure
3.0 Introduction
3.1 Objectives
3.2 Anglo-French Rivalry in the Carnatic
3.3 The Rise of British Power
3.3.1 Dual Government
3.3.2 Battle of Buxar
3.4 Answers to Check Your Progress Questions
3.5 Summary
3.6 Key Words
3.7 Self Assessment Questions and Exercises
3.8 Further Readings
3.0 INTRODUCTION
The 18th century in India was an important period of transition and remains
the subject of continuing debate among scholars of late medieval and
modern Indian history. The two main debates on the 18th century are the
nature of transition from a centralized Mughal polity to the emergence of
regional confederations, and the nature of the transformation brought about
by the increasing role of the English East India Company in the economic,
commercial, and financial life of the subcontinent. We see the rise of a new
economic order, and decentralization of political power which went hand-
in-hand with a broader localization process.
As you learnt, the death of Aurangzeb in 1707 laid bare a patchwork
of several sovereignties, a network of fragmented and layered forms of
regional political powers that had been partly masked and managed by the
practices of Mughal state and sovereignty. The 18th century was marked
by the emergence of regional polities, the so-called successor states like
Awadh, Bengal and Hyderabad, although they were politically and financially
independent from Mughal state, but always used the Mughal symbols and
titles for legitimacy and political stability. It is generally viewed that the East
India Company’s expansion in India took place due to a power vacuum left
after Aurangzeb’s death. In the debates of continuity and change, historians
have presented enduring socio-economic structures such as financial
institutions and information networks that emphasize the utility of Indian
Self-Instructional
Material 53
Rivalry Between European agents or collaborators in facilitating early company rule. In this unit, you
Powers in India
will get acquainted with the advent of British rule in India, as well as the
rivalry between the British and the French.
NOTES
3.1 OBJECTIVES
Compagnie des Indes was the first French company to establish trading
relations with India. Louis XIV, the then king of France, granted authority
for this company in 1664. After this, the planning of this French company
was done by Colbert, the then finance minister of France.
Under this company, the first factory was established in 1668 at Surat.
The founder of the first factory was Coron, a Dutchman in the French Service.
The next factory was set up in 1669 at Masulipattinam. In 1674, Pondicherry
became their capital. From 1690 to 1692, the French set up one more factory
at Chandra Nagar, Bengal on the bank of river Hugli. Mahe (now Malabar)
and Karikal (now Coromandel) were acquired by the French in 1725 and
1739 respectively.
The company was given a loan of 3,000,000 livres by the king. For this
loan, the king did not charge any interest. The Company had the monopoly
for 25 years to conduct trading activities from the Cape of Good Hope to
India and the South Seas. Aurangzeb gave a farmaan in the favour of the
company according to which the company had the permission to conduct
trading activities in the Gujarat coast as well.
The English
The Company named ‘The Governor and Company of Merchants of London
Trading in the East Indies’ was granted a royal charter by Queen Elizabeth.
The company was given rights for carrying out trading activities in the East.
Later, the company became popular as the English East India Company.
For many years, the company traded only with Java, Sumatra and the
Moluccas. At this time, they dealt only in the trading of spices. In 1608,
Captain William Hawkins met Jahangir. He showed him the letter which he
Self-Instructional
54 Material
brought from James I, King of England. In this letter, James I had requested Rivalry Between European
Powers in India
Jahangir to allow the English merchant to establish trade in the country.
The merchants of Portugal and Surat strongly opposed the establishment of
the English merchant in India. Thus, Jahangir had to decline the request of
James I. NOTES
In 1609, Jahangir gave permission to the English to set up their factory
at Surat. The company also received permission from the Sultan of Golkunda
to trade in Golkunda. However, for this the sultan made a condition that the
company will have to pay fixed custom duty of 500 pagodas per year. In
1651, Nawab Shuja-ud-din permitted the company to continue their trading
activities for which the company would be obliged to pay `3,000 annually.
In 1656, the English was given the security of trade as well. According
to this directive, the English received permission to carry on their import and
export activities on land as well water without the need to pay customs or tolls.
In 1691, Ibrahim Khan who was the successor of Shaista Khan issued a
farmaan in the favour of the English. According to this farmaan, the English
were given permission to carry out duty free trade, but they were asked to pay
`3,000 annually. After 1691, the company prospered by leaps and bounds in
Bengal. In the year 1696, the company gave an excuse that it is at risk from
Sobha Singh, a zamindar of Burdwan as he might rebel against the company.
With the help of this excuse, the company got the rights for the fortification
of their factory.
The zamindari of three villages: Sutanuti, Govindapur and Kalighata or
Kalikata, was given to the English in 1698. In return, they were to pay `1,200
to Sabarna Chaudhari who was the zamindar of these three villages before
the zamindari was granted to the English. In 1700, a separate President and
Council took charge of the factories of Bengal. Also, the English constructed
a fort. This fort was named after King William II of England. Later, this fort
became the seat of the Council which took charge of the factories. The first
President and Governor of this Council was Sir Charles Eyre.
In 1714, the English sent John Surman to the Delhi court to arrange
all trading facilities for the East India Company. When he met Emperor
Farukhsiyar, the emperor issued a farmaan by which the company was granted
permission to carry on custom free trade in Bengal, Madras and Bombay. In
addition to this, the company was also allowed to mint his own coins.
The French vs The English
In 1749, the French company seemed to a serious rival of the English
Company, but it could not survive for a long time due to the following reasons:
• The French Company was controlled by the government, but the
government was not too interested in the company’s affairs. On the
other hand, the English company was a private concern company.
Self-Instructional
Material 55
Rivalry Between European • The English company had more money as compared to the French
Powers in India
company. The area of the English trade was also vast.
• The English were strong on the waters as well. They had big ships and
NOTES their merchants made regular voyage for trading activities.
War between the English and the French
From 1746 to 1763, the English East India Company and French East India
Company fought with each other in India. These wars are known as the
Carnatic wars. They fought with each other in order to get monopoly over
trade in India. The Indian rulers, the Mughals, the subedar of Deccan did not
participate in these wars.
The First Carnatic War (1746–1748)
The First Carnatic War was directly linked to the events in Europe. The
English and French were fighting on the issue of Austria’s succession
(1740–48). Once the war broke in March 1740, the two companies in India
started preparing for it. Dupleix, the French Governor-General in India since
1742, was the first to realize the necessity of obtaining political influence and
territorial control. But he had to face many difficulties. The French East India
Company was the Government’s company which was in trouble. Although
the trade of the company had increased in recent past, its expenditure was
more than its income. Naturally, it fell into heavy indebtedness. If this was not
enough, the rivalry between two senior leaders-Dupleix and La Bourdonnais,
worsened the situation for French. La Bourdonnais arrived near Pondicherry
in July 1746 with 10 vessels, 406 canons, 2,350 white soldiers and 700 black
soldiers. He wanted to act with complete independence, while Governor-
General Dupleix considered himself superior.
On September 21, 1746 the French troops, led by La Bourbononais,
captured Madras, an important English trading centre since mid–17th century.
Anwar-ud-din, the Nawab of Carnatic, sent a large Indian army to drive the
French out of Madras. He was ‘guided’ by the English. In the Battle of St.
Thonie (November 4, 1746) situated on the bank of Adyar river, Mahfuz
Khan, son of Anwaruddin, was defeated by French captain Paradis. He had
less than a thousand soldiers and had to fight 10,000 men. But the disciplined
and organized army of the French, led by capable officers, won the battle.
The English on the other hand besieged Pondicherry from 6th September
to 15th October 1748. But Dupleix made a strong defence and forced the
English to retreat. This triumph of Dupleix made him a known and popular
figure in the Indian courts. The war came to an end by the treaty of Aix-la-
Chapelle (1748), under which Madras was given back to the English. The
French got Quebec (Canada) in exchange of Madras. The English promised
not to attack Pondicherry.
Self-Instructional
56 Material
The first Carnatic war taught the lesson to the French that a small army Rivalry Between European
Powers in India
of Europeans, aided by Indian troops and trained after the European fashion
could easily defeat much larger Indian armies.
To secure political advantages, Dupleix started interfering in the internal
NOTES
matters of Hyderabad and Carnatic. Chin Qilich Khan Nizam-ul-Mulk, the
founder of independent Hyderabad kingdom, died in 1748. Dupleix supported
Muzaffar Jang, the grandson of Nizam instead of Nasir Jung, the son. The
Nawab of Carnatic, Anwaruddin also died in 1749. Dupleix supported
Chanda Sahib to the throne of the Carnatic as against Mohammad Ali, the
illegitimate son of late Nawab. The English had no other option except to
support Nasir Jung for Hyderabad and Mohammad Ali for Carnatic. Thus
the war of succession in these two kingdoms led to second Anglo-French
War (1749–1754).
The Second Carnatic War (1749–1754)
The war started at the time when the English and French had peace in Europe.
This proved that the two were fighting in India for commercial supremacy
and not merely because of their traditional rivalry.
On 3 August, 1749, French soldiers with sepoys (from ‘Sipahi’ of
Persian) attacked Arcot in Ambur, the capital of Carnatic. Anwaruddin
was killed and his elder son, Mahfuz Khan was captured but his younger
son Mohammad Ali Khan Wallajah fled. He took shelter at Trichinopoly,
proclaimed himself the Nawab of Arcot and received support from the English.
Chanda Sahib and the French officer, Jacques Law seized Trichinopoly. At
this critical juncture, a young English officer, Robert Clive seized Arcot, the
capital of Chanda Sahib on September 11, 1751 with only 200 European
soldiers and 300 sepoys. The purpose was to free Trichinopoly from Chanda
Sahib’s seize. The plan worked and Chanda Sahib had to withdraw his large
army from Trichinopoly to lay siege to Arcot to recapture it. Clive and his
small army stood the siege for 50 days. Chanda Sahib had to withdraw; later
the English defeated him and his Indian allies at several places; he surrendered
and was finally executed, the French gave up their entire claim over Carnatic.
However, the French supremacy over Hyderabad continued. Muzaffar
Jung was installed as the Nizam and Subedar of the Deccan. In return, the
French got command of a vast area from Krishna to Cape Camorin which
was the jagir of Valdavur. Though Muzaffar Jung was killed in 1751, his
successor Salabat Jung continued his ‘friendship’ with the French. Bussy, the
French officer at Hyderabad, even succeeded in obtaining ‘farmaan’ from the
Mughal emperor Ahmad Shah, confirming Salabat as the ruler of the Deccan.
The failure of the French in Carnatic was a great setback. The French
Government, which was always in trouble, could not bear this defeat. So it
Self-Instructional
Material 57
Rivalry Between European recalled Dupleix to France in 1754. The Second Carnatic War had ended
Powers in India
with English acquiring dominance in Carnatic and French, a place in the
Court of Nizam.
Self-Instructional
58 Material
The French could never focus towards India as their priority remained Rivalry Between European
Powers in India
Europe whereas England gave their full attention to the oceans and distant
lands, especially India. The French failed to understand the complex political
situation of India unlike the British. The French also failed to compete with
the English in naval supremacy. NOTES
Thus, the third Carnatic war ended the French challenge in India and
paved the way for the establishment of the British Empire in India.
Causes for the success of the British against the French
1. The English company was a private enterprise-this created a sense of
self-confidence among the people, the French Company was state-
owned.
2. Superior geographical position of England in Europe. France had to
pay more attention to its border while at war as compared to relative
secure position of England.
3. The English navy was superior to the French navy. It helped to cut off
the link between the French possessions in India and France.
4. French government never took interest in Indian affairs.
5. The English held three important places i.e. Calcutta, Bombay and
Madras whereas the French had only Pondicherry.
6. The French subordinated their commercial interest to territorial
ambition, which made the French Company short of funds.
Self-Instructional
Material 63
Rivalry Between European East India Company as Sovereign Ruler of Bengal
Powers in India
Clive’s Dual Government proved to be a complete failure. In 1772, Warren
Hastings became the governor of Bengal, and embarked upon an offensive
NOTES plan that would remove ‘the mask of Mughal sovereignty’ from the soil of
Bengal, and make the English the rightful rulers. The Company servants were
made responsible for dual administration The Nawab practically had no share
in administration. The pension granted to Shah Alam II was discontinued
and he was compelled to part with Allahabad and Kora, which were sold out
to shuja-ud-Daulah.
In this way, within a span of two decades, the reins of Bengal’s
administration passed over to the Company. Unfortunately, under Company
rule, the most prosperous and industrially developed province soon became
steeped in abject poverty and suffering that became augmented in the wake of
famines and epidemics. Gaining control over Bengal, the English had become
successful in founding a colonial empire and fulfil its imperial designs.
3.3.2 Battle of Buxar
The Battle of Buxar (1764) was fought between the forces under the command
of the British East India Company led by Hector Munro, and the combined
armies of Mir Qasim, the Nawab of Bengal; Shuja-ud-Daula the Nawab of
Awadh; and the Mughal Emperor Shah Alam II.
When Robert Clive and his Company officials had emptied the Nawab’s
treasures completely, they thought Mir Jafar to be incapable of yielding any
further benefits. Few English officials like Holwel were lobbying against
Mir Jafar. Mir Qasim, son-in-law of Mir Jafar replaced him as nawab on 27
September 1760. As rewards of his nawabship, Mir Qasim had to concede
Burdwan, Midnapore and Chittagaon to the East India Company. He shifted
the capital to Mungher. Though during the initial years, he accepted British
domination, however, the increasing misuse of the dastaks by the Company
servants and the consequent losses to the treasury exasperated him to abolish
the dastak system and exempt duties on trade for all. This precipitated the
deposition of Mir Qasim, with Mir Jafar being reinstated to nawabship. Mir
Qasim planned an offensive at Buxar (22 October 1764) against the English
by allying with Shah Alam II, the Mughal king and Shuja-ud-Daulah, the
Nawab of Awadh. However, the joint forces of the Indian sovereigns could
not win against the well-trained and regulated English troops, armed with
advanced ammunitions. The failure at Buxar made it evident that India lacked
in industrial and technological development.
After reinstating Mir Jafar to the throne of Bengal, the English
negotiated a treaty with Shah Alam at Allahabad in 1765 by which the latter
conceded diwani rights to the Company in lieu of a pension of `26 lakhs from
the Company and `53 lakhs from the Nawab of Bengal. Shuja-ud-Daulah,
Self-Instructional
64 Material
who was a party to the same treaty had to agree to give Allahabad and Kara Rivalry Between European
Powers in India
to the Mughals as well as part with the zamindari of Banaras to Balwant Rai,
who was an English loyalist.
In Bengal, between 1765 and 1772, an innovative governing machinery,
NOTES
the dual system of administration, was introduced. With the Company’s
consent, the Nawab appointed Raja Shitab Rai and Reza Khan as deputy
diwans, who in actual terms were delegated to work for the English rather than
the Nawab. By acquiring the diwani rights (authority of revenue collection),
the Company virtually became the de facto power, while the Nawab
remained the titular head responsible for civil and criminal administration.
The inhabitants of the region suffered the most through this arrangement. To
understand the motive behind such a decision, it may be reasoned out that
this system of administration reflected the Company’s inexperience in matters
related to administration, as the Company was essentially a trading body.
Since 1765, the Company became the actual sovereign of Bengal,
gaining exclusive rights over all military and political affairs. The Nawab was
made responsible for the defense of the British, within and outside Bengal.
The East India Company exercised direct control over diwani functions,
which gave them the right to collect the revenues of Bengal, Bihar and Orissa.
The Company had indirect hold over the nizamat functions, namely, judicial
and police rights, also possessing the right to nominate the deputy subedar.
Political Implications of the Battle of Buxar
The Battle of Buxar established British control over Bengal. Buxar revealed
the political and military shortfalls of the Indian rulers and the decadence of
the Mughal Empire. With increasing intrigues and factionalism at the Nawab’s
court, and with vested interests coming into play, corruption increased and
Company officials like Clive used the opportunity to become wealthy. The
Treaty of Allahabad signed by Shuja-ud-Daulah and Shah Alam II with the
English granted the latter the right to trade freely in Awadh. Moreover, the
English possessed the right to station an army at Awadh, which were to be
maintained by Shuja-ud-Daulah. In lieu of transferring the diwani rights over
Bengal, Bihar and Orissa to the English, Shah Alam II received Kora and
Allahabad and an annual pension of `26 lakhs.
Consequences of the Battle of Buxar
Though the Battle of Buxar was precipitated by the alliance drawn by Mir
Qasim with Shuja-ud-Daulah and thereby had caused political repercussions
in Bengal, Mir Qasim’s decision to break up the alliance even before Munro’s
attack, saved him. It appears that Shuja-ud-Daulah was the most affected by
the defeat at Buxar, making him a nominal power. The influential position
that he held in North India got curbed overnight. To get back his lost prestige,
he tried to annex Varanasi, Chunar and Allahabad, but could not progress
Self-Instructional
Material 65
Rivalry Between European further when his troops abandoned him. Trying to launch another offensive
Powers in India
against the English, he went from place to place to ally with other powers. He
even sought shelter from the Ruhelas and Bangash Afghans, who had been
traditional enemies of his family. However, with all his attempts becoming
NOTES futile, he surrendered to the English in May 1765 and sought shelter. Prior
to Shuja’s surrender, Shah Alam had accepted the English supremacy and
remained under their protection.
Militarily Buxar was very significant for the English. The English
victory at Plassey was not entirely commendable as Siraj suffered defeat
when his generals betrayed him. However, there was no instance of betrayal
at Buxar. The English troops emerged victorious defeating an experienced
politically influential personality like Shuja. After having established their
position in Bengal, Buxar laid out the path for British supremacy over north
India.
Treaty of Allahabad
In May 1765, Clive was entrusted the governorship of Bengal for the second
time. The Company officials were looking for the appropriate means to tackle
Shuja and Shah Alam. There were no further annexation plans with regard to
Shuja’s territories, which was already under the sway of the English forces.
The newly acquired responsibility of governing both Awadh and Allahabad
prompted the English to look for innovative designs.
According to the Treaty of Allahabad, the concluding agreement drawn
with Shuja-ud-Daulah, (16 August 1765), the territories earlier belonging to
Shuja, except Allahabad and Kora, were given back. Shah Alam was given
Allahabad and Kora. Also, Shuja was assured regular revenue payment from
his zamindari of Varanasi, which was presented by the English to Balwant
Singh for having helped them during Buxar. In this way, the Company
established ‘Perpetual and universal peace, sincere friendship and firm union’
with the Nawab. It was also agreed that if a third party attacked any one of the
powers, the other party to the Treaty would assist him in ousting the intruder
by sharing his troops totally or partially. The Nawab had to bear the expenses
of the Company’s army if it assisted the Nawab. However, it is not clear if
the Company met the expenses of the Nawab’s army when the Company
used its services. Also, the Nawab had to pay `50 lakh as compensation for
the war, and grant permission to the Company to continue duty-free trade
in his territories.
The Puppet Nawabs of Bengal
Post-Buxar, Mir Jafar was reinstated to the throne of Bengal by the English.
By agreeing to reduce his troops, Mir Jafar had curbed the military powers
of the nawab further. He was unable to bring in any formidable political or
administrative changes in Bengal at this stage because he had a very weak
Self-Instructional
66 Material
personality and had developed a negative approach considering the unpleasant Rivalry Between European
Powers in India
political situation he had to tackle and his ailment (believed to be suffering
from leprosy). The English success at Buxar, followed by Mir Jafar’s demise
sealed the fate of the nawabs in Bengal and laid the foundation of the British
empire in Bengal. NOTES
The Company made Najm-ud-Daulah, Mir Jafar’s minor son, the nawab
and signed a treaty with him that made the throne completely subservient to
the English Muhammad Reza Khan was appointed deputy governor by the
nawab under English directives. Khan looked after the entire administration,
and he could only be replaced with the approval of the governor and Council.
The governor and Council’s approval were also essential while appointing
or removing revenue collectors.
Subsequently, the Nawab’s status deteriorated further. After resuming
for his second term of governorship in May 1765, Clive pressurized Najm-
ud-Daulah to grant all the revenues to the Company in exchange of an annual
pension of `50 lakh. When Najm-ud-Daulah died in 1766, he was succeeded
by his minor brother Saif-ud-Daulah, who was granted a pension of `12
lakh only. Before his death (1770), he had signed a treaty with the English
in 1766 by which he had granted all matters related to the administration
and protection of the provinces of Bengal, Bihar and Orissa to the English.
The pension amount was further reduced to `10 lakh when Najm-
ud-Daulah was succeeded by his minor brother Mubarak-ud-Daulad. That
the powers of the nawabs had been completely curbed is evident from the
following comment made by a judge of the Supreme Court at Calcutta in
1775 regarding the status of the nawab and calling him as ‘a phantom, a
man of straw’.
1. Compagnie des Indes was the first French company to establish trading
relations with India.
2. In 1674, Pondicherry became the Dutch capital.
Self-Instructional
Material 67
Rivalry Between European 3. Jahangir declined the request of James I to let Captain William Hawkins
Powers in India
establish trade in India because the merchants of Portugal and Surat
strongly opposed the establishment of the English merchant in India.
4. In 1691, Ibrahim Khan, who was the successor of Shaista Khan, issued
NOTES
a farmaan in the favour of the English. According to this farmaan, the
English were given permission to carry out duty free trade but they
were asked to pay `3,000 annually.
5. The outcome of the Dual government was that it had badly affected
the administration. There was hardly any discipline and order and
commerce suffered heavy losses.
6. The Battle of Buxar (1764) was fought between the forces under the
command of the British East India Company led by Hector Munro,
and the combined armies of Mir Qasim, the Nawab of Bengal; Shuja-
ud-Daula the Nawab of Awadh; and the Mughal Emperor Shah Alam
II.
7. The Battle of Buxar established British control over Bengal. Buxar
revealed the political and military shortfalls of the Indian rulers and
the decadence of the Mughal Empire.
8. The consequences of the Battle of Buxar are as follows:
• English supremacy was accepted by Shah Alam.
• Militarily Buxar was very significant for the English.
3.5 SUMMARY
• Compagnie des Indes was the first French company to establish trading
relations with India.
• Louis XIV, the then king of France, granted authority for this company
in 1664.
• The Company named ‘The Governor and Company of Merchants of
London Trading in the East Indies’ was granted a royal charter by
Queen Elizabeth.
• From 1746 to 1763, English East India Company and French East India
Company fought with each other in India. These wars are known as
Carnatic wars.
• The First Carnatic War was directly linked to the events in Europe. The
English and French were fighting on the issue of Austria’s succession
(1740–48).
• In 1717, the Mughal emperor issued a farman by which it granted
special benefits to the English East India Company, namely, exemption
of taxes on goods imported and exported from Bengal.
Self-Instructional
68 Material
• To punish the highhandedness of the Company, Siraj-ud-Daulah Rivalry Between European
Powers in India
retaliated by striking Calcutta on 16 June 1756 and bringing it under
his sway by 20 June 1756.
• According to Sir Jadunath Sarkar, an eminent historian, 23 June 1757, NOTES
marked the end of the medieval period in India and the beginning of
the modern period.
• In Bengal’s history, the treaty of Allahabad (1765) is extremely
significant as it ushered in a new administrative mechanism, which
laid down the foundation of the British administrative system in India.
• The Battle of Buxar (1764) was fought between the forces under the
command of the British East India Company led by Hector Munro,
and the combined armies of Mir Qasim, the Nawab of Bengal; Shuja-
ud-Daula the Nawab of Awadh; and the Mughal Emperor Shah Alam
II.
Self-Instructional
70 Material
British Governor
BLOCK – II Generals - I
4.0 INTRODUCTION
As you have learnt, the East India Company was a joint-stock company which
was established by a group of English traders for pursuing trade with the East
Indies. It was observed that their trade was mainly focused towards the Indian
subcontinent. Through the grant of a Royal Charter in 1599, the Company
became one of the oldest companies among the similarly formed East India
Companies of Europe. Wealthy English merchants and aristocrats owned the
shares of the East India Company. The British government had no shares in
the company and had only minimal control over their matters. Though the
Company was ruling India from a long time exercising administrative and
economic functions of India, it was only after the Battle of Plassey in 1757
and the Battle of Buxar in 1764 that their rule became effective in India. It
was only after the Government of India Act, 1858 that India came under the
direct rule of the British Crown.
The British were aware that because they were not natives of the land
they could not win the confidence of the people. Therefore, they banked
on superior force rather than on public support for exercising their control
over India. On his return from India, the Duke of Wellington, who had
served in India under his brother, Lord Wellesley, remarked: ‘The system of
Government in India, the foundation of authority, and the modes of supporting
it and of carrying on the operations of government is entirely different from the
systems and modes adopted in Europe for the same purpose. The foundation
Self-Instructional
Material 71
British Governor and the instrument of all power there is the sword.’ In the hundred years that
Generals - I
transpired between the Battle of Plassey (1757) and Great Revolt of 1857,
India was witness to large scale political, economic, social and cultural
upheavals under the East India Company. In this timeframe, the Company
NOTES morphed from a mere trade and commerce business entity into a paramount
power in India. The Company’s territorial possessions spread from Bengal
in the east to all parts of India and came to be known as the British Indian
Empire. In the beginning, the administrator was the Governor of Bengal
and later as the territories expanded, the administrator became the Governor
General of India. The paramount concern, however, remained trade and the
profits that the company was accruing. It treaded cautiously whilst formulating
policies making sure that these were in tandem with the aim of protecting and
promoting the commercial interests of the Company. This unit will discuss
the different governor-generals of India from 1757 to 1857.
4.1 OBJECTIVES
As you have learnt, Robert Clive was a key figure of the East India Company
campaigns in the Battle of Plassey and the Battle of Buxar. It was because
of his machinations and intrigue that the British were able to depose the
powerful Nawabs of Bengal and establish a firm grip in India. He first became
the Governor General of Bengal in 1758. His stint as the Governor for the
first time lasted two years, during which he waged campaigns to strengthen
British rule in the country. He left India in 1760 due to ill-health.
Clive returned to Calcutta in May 1765 as the Governor of Bengal for
the second term. The problem of the Company’s relations with the Mughals
awaited a solution. Clive made the final settlement through the Treaty of
Allahabad with Shuja-ud-Daula (16 August 1765) Shuja’s old dominions
were restored to him with the exception of Allahabad and Kora which were
given to Shah Alam.
The Treaty of Allahabad (1765) constituted a landmark in the history
of Bengal because it led to that administrative transition which prepared
the ground for the introduction of British system of administration in India.
Self-Instructional
72 Material
It marked the end of the Nawab’s authority and ushered in a system under British Governor
Generals - I
which power was ingeniously divorced from responsibility.
The English by the Treaty of Allahabad (with Shah Alam II) has secured
the Diwani rights in return for an annual payment of ` 26 lakh to the emperor
NOTES
and a provision of ` 53 lakh for the nizamat functions. Prior to this treaty, the
English had concluded another treaty in February 1765 with Nawab Najm-ud-
Daula who surrendered virtually all the nizamat powers, including military,
defence and foreign affairs, to the Company. Thus, the Company secured
the diwani powers of the province from the emperor and the nizamat from
the Nawab. The Company exercised the diwani and the nizamat functions
through its agents who were Indians, but the actual power was in the hands
of the Company. This system of administration, the rule of the Company
and the Nawab, was known as the Dual or Double Government of Bengal.
This system caused administrative breakdown. Law and order
deteriorated, trade and commerce was disrupted, merchants were reduced
to beggary, the rich and prosperous industries, particularly those of silk and
textiles were ruined, peasants were reduced to acute poverty and agriculture
was rendered unremunerative. During the great famine of 1770, the ills of
the Company’s indirect rule were fully realized. In the course of this famine
about 10 million people, comprising one-third of the total population of
Bengal and Bihar, were swept away.
On the other hand, general distress was turned by many of the
Company’s officials and their gomastas into a source of illicit private profit.
They monopolized all available grain and compelled the poor ryots to sell even
the seed required for the next harvest. At a time when ‘the living were feeding
on the dead’ the worst profiteering was allowed to continue without inquiry
or punishment. Despite the large mortality and the consequent decrease of
cultivation, not even five per cent of the land revenue was remitted and 10
per cent was added to it the next year. The surviving inhabitants of a village
had to make up for the loss of revenue due to desertion or death of their
neighbours. Cartier was the governor of Bengal then (1769–72).
The decrease in population caused by the famine seriously affected
agricultural production and caused considerable delocation in the economic
life of the province. It affected the zamindars: their collections fell as the
number and paying capacity of the peasantry were seriously affected. It
affected the Company’s commercial profits too, because it swept away many
cultivators and artisans.
East India Company as Sovereign Ruler of Bengal
The dual system of government introduced by Clive proved to be a failure.
When Warren Hastings was appointed governor of Bengal in 1772, he
‘tore the mask of Mughal sovereignty’ and decided to rule Bengal by the
Self-Instructional
Material 73
British Governor right of conquest. The dual system of administration was transferred to the
Generals - I
servants of the Company. The Nawab was deprived of even nominal share
in administration. The allowance of the Nawab was reduced from ` 32 lakh
to ` 16 lakh. The Company also stopped the payment of ` 26 lakh annually
NOTES to Emperor Shah Alam II. Allahabad and Kora were taken away from the
Mughal Emperor and sold out to the Nawab of Awadh.
Thus, in less than two decades, the actual power in Bengal was
transferred from the Nawabs of Bengal to the East India Company and this
richest and industrially most advanced province of India was reduced to acute
poverty and misery, which was further aggravated by famines and epidemics.
The capture of Bengal opened the floodgates of British colonialism and
imperialism in India, reducing the rich economy of the country to a colonial
economy. Clive himself left India in 1768 and died in 1774.
Self-Instructional
74 Material
Judicial reforms British Governor
Generals - I
The judicial reforms, initiated by Hastings include:
• Clipping judicial powers of zamindars
• Setting up civil and criminal courts in every district NOTES
Self-Instructional
Material 75
British Governor • The Quinquennial land revenue system was initiated.
Generals - I
• To help the members of the Revenue Board, local officers called Rai
Rayan, were appointed.
NOTES • The Quinquennial system was replaced by the one-year settlement
which was decided in favour of the highest bidder.
• Understanding the sufferings of the people, other taxes were removed,
but land revenue was collected at a set rate.
Commercial reforms
Hastings introduced the following commercial reforms:
• Decreasing customs duties: Apart from salt, betel nut and tobacco,
duties on all goods were decreased by 2.5 per cent. Both locals and
Europeans had to pay customs duties.
• Removing numerous customs posts: As trade got affected owing to a
large number of customs posts, only five customs posts were retained,
namely, Calcutta, Hughli, Murshidabad, Patna and Dhaka.
Abolition of the dastak system
With the removal of dastaks, the Company servants had no option but to pay
duties for their personal goods, which reduced corruption and augmented
the Company’s revenues.
Sending commercial mission to other countries: To improve trade,
commercial missions were dispatched to countries like Bhutan, Tibet and
Egypt.
Social reforms
To encourage Islamic studies, he founded the Calcutta Madrassa in 1781,
which was the first educational institution founded by the British Government.
Thereafter, the Sanskrit College was established at Benaras by Jonathan
Duncan in 1792. Under Hastings’ patronage William Wilkins had translated
the Gita and Nathaniel Halhed had compiled a digest of Hindu laws.
Consequences of these Reforms
Though he succeeded in improving the governing machinery, he did not
receive adequate government support. Also, he had to entertain the whims
and fancies of his seniors who wanted to fill up the posts by their favoured
candidates and not by those chosen on the basis of their merit. Struggling
against all odds, he managed to provide his successor, Lord Cornwallis, with
a strong administrative structure. Hence, it may well be said that if Lord Clive
had established the territorial foundation of the British Empire in Bengal,
Hastings had given the British administrative structure a solid foundation.
Self-Instructional
76 Material
Impeachment British Governor
Generals - I
In protest against the Pitts India Bill, Warren Hastings resigned from office
in 1785. Accused of the Rohilla War, Nand Kumar’s murder, the case of Chet
Singh and for having accepted bribes, he was impeached for seven years NOTES
from 1788 to 1795. By the time he was acquitted (23April 1795), he had no
money left and had become a pauper.
Regulating Act of 1773
The British government directed the affairs of the Company through the
Regulating Act, 1773. It was particularly initiated with to serve this purpose.
Warren Hastings was formally declared to be as Governor General of Bengal
and he was to be assisted by an executive council comprising four members.
The Act empowered the Governor General-in-council to make rules,
ordinances and regulations that were meant to bring order and establish
civil government. Through this Act, Hastings was able to convert a trading
company into an administrative body that formed the basis of the British
Empire in India.
Main Provisions
The main specifications of the Regulating Act, 1773 are listed below:
• The King of England was in charge of the East India Company. High
officials of the company, judges and member of the court of directors
were to be nominated.
• The qualifying sum to gain voting right in the court of proprietors was
increased from £500 to £1000.
• The directors, who were earlier elected annually, had to continue
office for four years, and a quarter of the number were to be re-elected
annually.
• A Supreme Court comprising a Chief Justice and three other judges
was established in Bengal. Apart from the Governor General and the
members of his Council, it entailed civil, criminal, admiralty and
ecclesiastical jurisdiction over all British subjects in the Company’s
dominions.
• The Governor General and his four councillors were to look after civil
and military affairs and they who were mentioned in the Act in the first
instance. They were to hold office for five years and during their tenure
they could only be removed by the king on the representation of the
court of directors.
• Though he had a casting vote which were to be used to break a
stalemate, the Governor General had to abide by the decision of the
majority of the Council.
Self-Instructional
Material 77
British Governor • In matters of war and peace, the Governor General’s decision was
Generals - I
considered final, above the opinions expressed by the Governors of
Madras and Bombay. Salaries were augmented if officers showed
better merit. Company servants were not permitted to accept presents
NOTES or bribes and indulge in private trade.
• Only with the prior permission of the Home Secretary could the
Governor General- in-council make rules.
• The Governor General-in-council had the right to issue rules, ordinances
and regulations, though they had to be registered in the Supreme Court.
Important Features of the Act
Important features of this Act include:
• It made it clear that the administration of Indian territories was not a
personal affair of the Company servants. The British Parliament was
empowered to make amendments.
• This Act initiated the course of territorial integration and administrative
centralization in India.
• It started a process of parliamentary control over administrative
decisions taken by the Company.
• The Act set up a Supreme Court of Judicature comprising a Chief Justice
and three other members. The Act provided the license to the British
government to have a say in the internal affairs of the Company.
• A council of four members was established to help the Governor
General. Though these members were to hold office for five years,
they could only be removed by the British Crown.
• The Supreme Government was entrusted ‘from time to time to make
and issue rules, ordinances, and regulations the good order and civil
government’ of the British territories.
• The Presidency of Bengal was made superior to other presidencies
and the governor of Bengal was appointed as Governor General.
Governors and the Councils of Madras and Bombay were had to follow
the decisions taken by the Governor General and Council of Bengal.
The Defects of the regulating Act
The defects of the Regulating Act of 177 have been outlined below:
• The Governor General did not have any veto power. Hastings often
had to struggle with his councillors who could easily impose their
decisions on him by majority voting.
• The jurisdiction of the Supreme Court and its relation with the Governor
General in Council was not specified.
Self-Instructional
78 Material
• The presidencies of Madras and Bombay often declared war, without British Governor
Generals - I
consulting the Governor General and Council of Bengal. In case of
Marathas and Haidar Ali, the Bombay government and Madras Council,
respectively, chose to decide on their own.
NOTES
• The reports sent by the Governor General in council in India was not
considered seriously and was not analyzed systematically.
• The Court of Directors had become ‘more or less permanent oligarchy’
Also, the Court of proprietors enjoyed immunity from any scrutiny
based on moral grounds. These privileges gave them allowance to
participate in intrigues and create factions which plagued the home
government internally.
Relations with Gurkhas
The Gurkhas wanted to expand their territory. Thus, they annexed
approximately two hundred villages from Darjeeling to Seinle, and Gorakhpur
as well. Lord Minto sent them an ultimatum of protest but they ignored it.
They invaded two districts named Sheroraj and Butwal. Hastings again sent
a message to the Gurkhas to leave these districts, but they did not pay heed
to his message. Thus, Hastings declared war on Nepal.
For the preparation of the war, Hastings borrowed one crore rupees
from the Nawab of Awadh. He decided to send four armies in the war against
Nepal. The Gurkhas defeated three of these armies, however, they were
defeated by the fourth. Then, Hastings forced the Gurkhas to sign the Treaty
of Sanguali in the year 1816.
The Treaty of Sugauli (1816)
As per this treaty, the Nepalese had to surrender districts of Garhwal and
Kumaon to the Company. These districts were situated on the west coast of
the River Kali. A British resident was appointed at Kathmandu. However,
the English agreed that he would not interfere in the internal affairs of the
country. Also, Nepal lost the right to employ Americans or Europeans in its
country without seeking permission from the English. Some of the features
of this treaty were as follows:
• The treaty benefitted the English in many ways, for instance, the
Nepalese supported the English in the ‘mutiny’ of 1857.
• The East India Company started employing Gorkha soldiers in the
English army.
• The territory under the British increased.
• The treaty ensured perpetual peace and friendship between the
Company and Nepal.
Self-Instructional
Material 79
British Governor Relations with Sikhs
Generals - I
Anglo-Sikh relations can best be described as strained not just during the
time of Warren Hastings, but even before and after. Moreover, the history
NOTES of the Anglo-Sikh relations also reflects the changing face of the East
India Company from a mere commercial enterprise into a political power.
The consolidation of Bengal and Oudh under the Company was crucial in
establishing the British as a formidable power gradually setting up base in
the Indian subcontinent. By August 1765, through the grant of the diwani
rights to the Company, Shah Alam concluded the transfer of power to the
British, thereby making them the supreme ruling authority over Bengal,
Bihar and Orissa. During 1765—1767, the numerous invasions of India by
Ahmad Shah Durrani was observed by Robert Clive (the victor of Plassey
and Governor of Bengal), with curious anticipation.
Warren Hastings, became the Governor General in 1773. He was
concerned about the increasing power and influence of the Sikhs. He made
great efforts to know more about them. Examples of this can be seen in the
different publications and travelogues that were submitted to the Company
on the Sikhs. Louis Henri Polier, a Swiss engineer in the Company’s military
service submitted a detailed account of the Sikhs in the year 1776. Even
though never published, this paper was quoted by George Forster, a civil
servant of the Company who at the behest of Warren Hastings, journeyed
through the regions of Punjab, Kashmir and Afghanistan disguised as a
Turkish traveller and wrote A Journey from Bengal to England.
Relations with Rajputs
The establishment of British influence over Rajput states and some minor
states in Central India was presided over by Lord Warren Hastings. Due to
a large number of internal and external factors, the Rajputs became prey
to external aggression at hands of the Pindaris, Pathans and Marathas. The
rulers of Rajasthan had lost their former glory because of petty skirmishes
within their territories as well as pseudo norms of heroism and chivalry. These
factors combined with other serious administrative lapses led to anarchy,
plunder and economic ruin. Bankrupt and vulnerable, the Rajputs were ready
to acknowledge British supremacy.
In consolidating the Mughal Empire in India, the Rajputs had played
a significant role. The English realized the strategic advantage of forming
as alliance with the Rajputs states would give them the boost they needed
to establish control over central India. Moreover this (the alliance with the
Rajputs) was something that the Marathas had failed to achieve in their
expansionist strategies.
Thus, with the sanction of the home authorities he opened negotiations
with the following Rajput States, which, one by one, entered into treaties
Self-Instructional
80 Material
of defensive alliance, perpetual friendship, protection and subordinate British Governor
Generals - I
cooperation with the Company: the State of Kotah, then under the able
guidance of Zalim Singh, on 26 December, 1817; Udaipur on 16 January,
1818, Bundi on 10 February, 1818; Kishangarh, near Ajmer, and Bikaner,
in March, 1818; Jaipur on 2 April, 1818; the three kingdoms of Pratapgarh, NOTES
Banswara and Dungarpur, branches of the Udaipur house and situated on
the border of Gujarat, on 5 October, 5 December, and 11 December, 1818,
respectively; Jaisalmer on 12 December, 1818 and Sirohi in 1823.
In other words, the Rajput states, who as per Hastings’ account,
proved to be an asset to the Company, subordinated their independence to
British supremacy and secured their protection. It is difficult to agree with
Prinsep that the ‘good government and tranquillity’ of Rajputana were ‘the
exclusive aims’ of the Company in interfering in its affairs. In fact, the guiding
considerations of Lord Hastings in his relations with the Rajput States were
political expediency and convenience and strategic advantages.
Relations with Pindaris
Pindaris were a group of plunderers. The Pindaris included fugitives from
justice, disbanded soldiers and idle people. They came to be known to people
during wars between the Marathas and the Mughals.
Causes of the Pindari war
Lord Hastings was angry at the plunders of Pindaris in the dominions of
Nizam, Northern Circars and the Gangetic valley. Thus, he took permission
from the Court of Directors of the East India Company to exterminate them.
After getting permission from the Directors he waged a war against the
Pindaris.
Events of the war
To begin his preparations for the War, he tried to understand several powers
which were active in India. After this, he made a military plan to surround
the Pindaris. This campaign by Hastings came to be known as the Pindari
War or the Third Anglo-Maratha War.
He made a plan to attach the Pindaris from the west from Gujarat,
from the east and North from Bengal and from the south from the Deccan.
Thus, he wanted to surround the Pindaris from all sides. He created a strong
and big army of 1,20,000 men and 300 artillery pieces to kill Pindaris. The
Pindaris made three groups and their leaders named Chitu Pindari, Karim
Khan Pindari and Wasil Muhammad Pindari led these groups in the war.
When Karim Khan Pindari came to know that the British are going
to attack the Pindaries, he tried to persuade other Pindari leaders to make a
plan for defence. However, the Pindari leaders did not agree to him. Karim
Khan and Wasil Muhammad went to Gwalior for the war and Chitu Pindari
Self-Instructional
Material 81
British Governor united with the forces of Holkar. After some time, all Pindari parties went
Generals - I
back to south as they had a base in south. Towards the end of December,
Jaswant Rao Bhau invited Karim Khan Pindari, thus, he went to north and
Chitu Pindari went to the area near Jawar. After making a number of failed
NOTES attempts to reach an agreement with the British, almost all the Pindari leaders
gradually surrendered in February, 1819.
The English made arrangements at Gorakhpur for the settlement of
Pindari leaders and their families. They gave them pensions and lands.
Charles Cornwallis was sent to India by the Court of Directors in the year
1786. He was entrusted the responsibility of executing the policy of peace
given in Pitt’s India Act and to restructure the administrative system in India.
Some of his major responsibilities were as follows:
• To find out a solution for land revenue problem.
• To set up a judiciary which is honest as well as efficient.
• To restructure the commercial division of the East India Company.
In order to restructure the administrative system, Cornwallis used the
basic structure of administration designed by Warren Hastings and made
some modifications in it. The structure designed by Cornwallis remained in
force till 1858.
Reforms in Judicial Administration, Public Revenue and Other Services
Cornwallis became Governor General of Bengal and he introduced a number
of reforms, which are as follows:
• Reforms in the judicial system: Cornwallis believed that District
Collector should have more authority than they already had. The Court
of Directors had also instructed the same. Thus, in 1787, Collectors
were appointed judges of Diwani Adalats and were given charge of
districts. The District Collectors were given powers of Magistrates so
that they could judge criminal cases. However, some limitations were
imposed on them in trying these cases.
Self-Instructional
82 Material
Some more changes were made in the administrative structure from British Governor
Generals - I
1790 to 1792. Foujdari Adalats were abolished and four circuit courts
were established in their place. Out of these four circuit courts, three
were for Bengal and one was for Bihar. The European servants were
given the authority to preside over these courts. These European NOTES
servants took help from Muftis and Qazis while trying the cases. These
courts went to districts two times in a year and tried cases.
The Sadr Nizamat Adalat at Murshidabad was also abolished. A
Mohammedan judge used to preside over this court. In place of this
court, another court was established in Calcutta. These courts consisted
of the Governor General and members of the Supreme Council. The
Chief Qazis and two Muftis assisted them.
Thus, the new judicial system had petty courts, districts courts, four
provincial courts and Sadr Diwani Adalat. Daroga courts and district
courts, four circuit courts and Sadr Nizamat Adalat were established
for trying criminal cases.
• Cornwallis code: In 1793, Cornwallis made a code of regulations for
guiding those servants of the East India Company who were working
in the judicial department. Cornwallis took Sir George Barlow’s help
for preparing this code. The commercial and administrative services
were demarcated clearly in this code. Before the preparation of this
code, Cornwallis realized that the Board of Revenue was not able to
settle a large number of cases. In order to solve this matter, mal adalats
were formed in every district. Collectors were made the heads of these
courts and they were given revenue powers as well. The administrative
structure was in existence even before Cornwallis but he was the one
who made the system harmonious and cohesive.
Cornwallis introduced a system in which people could lodge a
complaint against collectors and servants for not fulfilling their duties.
The government could also be sued in the court. He abolished inhuman
punishments such as capital punishment and mutilation of limbs. The
European people living in the districts had to follow the new judicial
system.
• Reforms in Public Services: The servants of East India Company
wanted to earn a lot of money. Since, the salaries of these servants were
low, they accepted bribe from people in order to earn more money.
They also confiscated the lands of zamindars in an unjust manner.
In order to solve these problems, Cornwallis raised their salaries and
terminated some of the servants. After this, he hired employees for the
Company solely on the basis of their merits. He did not allow any of
the employees to carry out trade in their private capacity.
Self-Instructional
Material 83
British Governor He did not trust Indians and behaved with them in a scornful manner.
Generals - I
Thus, his behaviour towards Indians was criticized. He did not recruit
Indian on high posts and gave such posts to Europeans. He divided
districts into small units and took away police powers from the
NOTES zamindars. A superintendent and representative of the company, who
resided in those districts, were given the charge of these units.
• Reforms in the Commercial Department of the Company: When
the Board of Trade was established, it were asked to obtain goods from
Indian and European contractors. These contractors supplied goods of
inferior quality at a very high price. The Board instead of checking these
practices, took bribe through them. Due to these corrupted practices of
the commercial department, Cornwallis took action against the Board
of Trade. He reduced the number of Board members from eleven to
five. The method of obtaining goods was also changed and the Board
was instructed to obtain goods from commercial agents and residents.
This way, he brought reforms in the commercial department.
• Reforms in the Collection of Revenue and Permanent Settlement:
It is really important to find a suitable method for revenue collection
in order to improve the condition of farmers. The methods used by
Robert Clive and Warren Hastings worsened the situation of farmers.
Thus, in 1786, the Court of Directors recommended that Cornwallis
should make ten years settlement with zamindars which can later be
made permanent. Cornwallis with the help of John Shore tried to find
a suitable method for revenue collection. To solve this problem, they
had a discussion on the following three questions:
1. Should the settlement be made with zamindars or tillers?
2. How much share should the state get in the produce of land?
3. Should the settlement be permanent or for a fixed term?
On the first question, John Shore believed that settlement should be
made with zamindars as they own the lands. Cornwallis was an English
landlord, thus, he agreed with John Shore. Moreover, the Court of Directors
also supported Cornwallis.
On the second question, Shore believed that the state’s share should be
decided on the basis of the actual collection of the year 1790–1791. Cornwallis
was also of the same opinion.
However, their opinions differed on the third question. Shore believed
that settlement should be made for ten years, but Cornwallis wanted permanent
settlement of revenue. Finally, in the year 1790, he declared settlement to be
for ten years but in 1793, the settlement was made permanent. Therefore,
permanent settlement was made in Bengal, Bihar, Orissa, Benaras and
Northern part of Tamil Nadu.
Self-Instructional
84 Material
Permanent Settlement British Governor
Generals - I
Some of the important features of Permanent Settlement were as follows:
• The settlement was made with zamindars as they were recognized as
owners of land as long as they pay revenue. NOTES
• Zamindars were asked to pay land revenue to the government. The
amount of land revenue was made fixed and they were promised that
it would not be increased. In case zamindars failed to pay revenue, the
government had the authority to sell their land through public auction.
They were required to pay 89 per cent of the collected rent to the state
and could keep the rest with themselves.
• Zamindars were allowed to sell or mortgage their land. They were also
allowed to give their land to someone else if they wanted to.
• It was expected that zamindars would made efforts to improve the
conditions of the farmers or tillers who were working on their land.
• The Government promised them that it would not interfere in its matters
till the time they pay their revenue in time.
Merits of Permanent Settlement
Some of the merits of permanent settlement are as follows:
• Under Permanent Settlement, zamindars had to pay fixed amount as
land revenue. In cases when zamindars were not able to pay their land
revenue, the government used to sell their lands to recover their land
revenue. Thus, the British government was sure of its income.
• The fixed income in the form of fixed land revenue gave economic
stability to the British government. This made the province of Bengal
prosperous.
• Permanent Settlement saved the British government from the
expenditure which it had to incur in order to extract land revenue from
zamindars. Earlier the British government spent a lot of money in order
to assess land on a regular basis.
• This settlement encouraged zamindars to improve the agricultural land
to earn more money. Earlier the zamindars did not make efforts to
improve their land as the British government used to take away most
of their profit in the name of land revenue.
• This settlement made zamindars wealthy and they could invest money
in trade, commerce and industry. It helped the provinces to prosper at
a fast pace.
• The settlement made zamindars loyal to the British so much so that
they supported the British even during the rebels in India.
Self-Instructional
Material 85
British Governor • Though the government could not increase the amount of land revenue
Generals - I
yet it could extract more money from the zamindars in the form of
taxes.
4.6 SUMMARY
• Robert Clive was a key figure of the East India Company campaigns
in the Battle of Plassey and the Battle of Buxar. It was because of his
machinations and intrigue that the British were able to depose the
powerful Nawabs of Bengal and establish a firm grip in India.
• The Treaty of Allahabad (1765) constituted a landmark in the history of
Bengal because it led to that administrative transition which prepared
the ground for the introduction of British system of administration in
India.
• The dual system of government introduced by Clive proved to be a
failure. When Warren Hastings was appointed governor of Bengal in
1772, he ‘tore the mask of Mughal sovereignty’ and decided to rule
Bengal by the right of conquest.
• Working as an administrative clerk in the East India Company, Warren
Hastings reached Calcutta in 1750. He gradually climbed up the ladder
and was appointed as the President of Kasimbazar, by Governor of
Bengal in 1772. Later, he became Governor General of Bengal in
1774 under the Regulating Act. After becoming Governor General,
he embarked upon the task of initiating various administrative reform
measures.
• Anglo-Sikh relations can best be described as strained not just during
the time of Warren Hastings, but even before and after.
• The establishment of British influence over Rajput states and some
minor states in Central India was presided over by Lord Warren
Hastings.
• Charles Cornwallis was sent to India by the Court of Directors in the
year 1786. He was entrusted the responsibility of executing the policy
of peace given in Pitt’s India Act and to restructure the administrative
system in India.
• In order to restructure the administrative system, Cornwallis used the
basic structure of administration designed by Warren Hastings and
Self-Instructional
Material 87
British Governor made some modifications in it. The structure designed by Cornwallis
Generals - I
remained in force till 1858.
• Under Permanent Settlement, zamindars had to pay fixed amount as
land revenue. In cases when zamindars were not able to pay their land
NOTES
revenue, the government used to sell their lands to recover their land
revenue.
GENERALS - II
NOTES
Structure
5.0 Introduction
5.1 Objectives
5.2 Lord Wellesley: Subsidiary Alliance System
5.3 Lord Warren Hastings: Reforms
5.4 Lord William Bentinck
5.4.1 Reforms of Lord William Bentinck
5.5 Lord Dalhousie: Doctrine of Lapse
5.6 Answers to Check Your Progress Questions
5.7 Summary
5.8 Key Words
5.9 Self Assessment Questions and Exercises
5.10 Further Readings
5.0 INTRODUCTION
Acts by British were designed to cover every sphere of life as each act was
department specific. Among these, the more significant acts were those that
were created to regulate education, land revenue, indigo plantation and press.
The underlined purpose of each act was to consolidate the supremacy of the
East India Company in India. To ensure a seamless delegation of power in
India, the British had their representatives in the form of Governor Generals
and viceroys. These expansionist policies were seen as instruments of
introducing change in British Acts in India.
In 1765, the year Clive arrived in India can be said to begin a new era
in the history of British India. Many scholars have reflected upon the Mughal
nature of Hastings’ rule. Far from being English, the nature of this new
regime was rather like the dying Mughal Empire and could be critiqued as
private dominion of the East India Company. In other words, it was hardly a
colony of the British as the administrative structure was largely Mughal (not
British) and its officials were Indians (not Europeans). During the thirteen
year tenure of Warren Hastings (not to be confused with the other governor-
general Warren Hasting), his internal administration, his dealings with his
council, and his foreign policy were noteworthy. Bentinck and Dalhousie
were other notable Governor-Generals. We will study each of them in turn.
Self-Instructional
Material 89
British Governor
Generals - II 5.1 OBJECTIVES
Though the Subsidiary Alliance System was formed in the second half of
the eighteenth century, yet the credit of this policy goes to Lord Wellesley
as it developed from 1798 to 1805 when Lord Wellesley was the Governor
General of India.
The system of Subsidiary Alliance was introduced by Dupleix, the
French Governor by giving his army to Indian rulers on rent. The same
policy was adopted by many Governor Generals of the East India Company
such as Robert Clive. In 1765, the English signed a treaty with Awadh at
Allahabad. As per this treaty, the English promised that their troops would
protect Awadh and the Nawab would bear the expenses of the troops. They
also appointed an English resident in the court of the Nawab and was asked
to bear his expenses as well.
In 1787, when Lord Cornwallis was the Governor General, the Nawab
of Carnatic promised that he would not take help from any foreign power
without obtaining permission from the Company. Similarly, in 1798, the
Nawab of Awadh promised Sir John Shore that no European would be
employed in Awadh.
In this way, the Subsidiary alliance system was in existence even before
the Governor Generalship of Lord Wellesley. However, the system developed
fully when he added some elements in this system. Indian states were asked
to yield some of the territories to the Company if they wanted to sign this
treaty. This way, the company succeeded in expanding its empire in India.
Let us study the development stages of the policy of Subsidiary Alliance:
Stage 1: The Company offered its army on rent to Indian states. These states
were asked to pay cash in return. In 1768, Hyderabad signed this
pact
Stage 2: The Company offered that it would keep its army ‘near the
boundaries of Indian states’ in order to ‘protect’ the states. In lieu
Self-Instructional
90 Material
of this service, the state was asked to pay an annual fee. In 1784, British Governor
Generals - II
Sindhia accepted this offer.
Stage 3: The Company offered that it would keep its army ‘inside the
boundaries of Indian States’ to ‘protect’ the state. The states were
NOTES
asked to pay annual fee in return. In 1798, Hyderabad agreed to
sign treaty with the company.
Stage 4: The Company offered to keep its army inside the boundaries of
the Indian states to protect the state. In lieu of this ‘service’, the
company asked the states to give some part of their territory. In
1800, Hyderabad signed this treaty and in 1801, Oudh also signed
the treaty with the Company.
Features of the Subsidiary Alliance
Some features of the Subsidiary Alliance were as follows:
• The Company promised to protect the states from outside attack.
• The rulers had to bear the expenses of the British force which was
employed for the protection of the state.
• The rulers could not employ any foreigner in their states without the
permission of the Company. They could not build diplomatic ties with
other States.
• The rulers had to bear the expenses of the British resident which was
appointed in their court.
• The Company followed the policy of non-interference as far as the
internal matters of the states were concerned.
Advantages of the Subsidiary Alliance to the Company
The Subsidiary Alliance benefited the Company in the following ways:
• The Subsidiary Alliance proved advantageous for the Company in
many ways.
• With the help of this system, the Company maintained a large army
at the expense of the Nawabs. They could use this army in annexing
other territories or protect their own empire.
• As per the treaty, the Nawabs were not allowed to employ any foreigner
in their states without their permission. This reduced the threat which
the Company had from Europeans and the French.
• Since the states were not allowed to build ties with other states, the
Company felt secured in India as Indian states could not stand united
to rebel against the Company.
• The treaty made Nawabs puppets in the hands of the Company as they
had to seek permission from the Company on a number of issues.
Self-Instructional
Material 91
British Governor • In lieu of the ‘services’, the Company asked for fertile lands of the
Generals - II
territories of Nawabs so that they could earn more money with the help
of these lands. This way, Nawabs lost a lot of money of the States and
this made the states poor.
NOTES
Lord Hastings was the Governor General of India from 1813 to 1826. He
followed the footsteps of Lord Wellesley. After taking retirement, he took
up the position of Governor of Malta.
Reforms by Hastings
The reforms introduced by Lord Hastings were as follows:
• Reforms in the judicial system: He made a lot of effort to improve
the administrative system of India. In spite of the fact that he was
preoccupied due to a number of wars, he was successful in making
some reforms in the administrative system. The judicial system at that
time had a number of flaws. There were a numerous pending cases in
the court. Let us study about the reforms made in the judicial system
by Lord Hastings:
o Lord Hastings gave more powers to the Collectors.
o After taking permission from the Directors of the Company,
he appointed a Munsif at each police station. He gave them the
authority to hear cases related to property as well claims in case
the claim is not more than `64. The Diwani Adalats were given the
authority either to confirm the decision or to re-hear the case.
o In some of the cases, people were not given the right to re-appeal.
o The Registrars were also given more powers. The Diwani Adalats
had the authority to send some cases to registrars in case the case
involved claims up to `50. In extra-ordinary cases, the Registrars
could even hear cases which involved claims up to `500.
o People had the right to file appeals against registrars’ decisions
directly in the provincial courts.
o The cases of claims up to `5,000 were heard by the Diwani Adalat.
In case, the claim was more than `50,000, the case was sent to
Appellate Provincial Courts. Sadr Diwani Adalat had the powers
to transfer cases from Diwani Adalat to Appellate Provincial Court.
o In the year 1821, the Governors General were given the authority
to give magisterial powers either to the Collector of the revenue
departments or to any high official of the revenue department.
o In 1815, changes were brought about in the criteria of the eligibility
Self-Instructional
92 Material to become judge in Sadr Diwani Adalat. The judge of Sadr Diwani
Adalat needed to have three years of experience in Provincial Court British Governor
Generals - II
or nine years of experience in judicial work.
o The Magistrates were given the authority to give strict punishments
such as corporeal punishment up to 30 canes.
NOTES
• Reforms in revenue collection: Hastings was of the opinion that
permanent settlement should be made but the Directors of the Company
did not allow him to do so. Therefore, he introduced the Mahalwari
System. As per this system, the settlement was made for the period of
twenty years in Punjab and for thirty years in Agra. Nambardar, the
head of the village, was given the responsibility to collect revenue from
all the zamindars and deposit the amount in the Government treasury.
The disputes related to revenue were heard in Diwani Adalat. In view
of the interests of farmers, the Government passed an Act, known as
Bengal Tenancy Act, in 1882.
Similarly, in Madras, the Government introduced the Ryotwari System
for revenue collection. Hastings introduced reforms in the system of
revenue collection in Mumbai as well.
• Reforms in the field of education: One of the achievements of Lord
Hastings was that he opened a number of vernacular schools near
Calcutta. He also opened a college and stressed on the importance
of English language in this college. Some of his predecessors forced
restrictions on Press but Hastings removed most of the restrictions to
give liberty to Press.
Self-Instructional
Material 97
British Governor Educational reforms
Generals - II
William Bentinck is also popular for introducing a number of reforms in the
education system. During the Governor Generalship of Bentinck, the aim of
NOTES education was defined. As per the Charter Act of 1813, one lakh rupees per
year was allotted for the ‘revival and promotion of knowledge of the sciences
among the inhabitants of the British territories’.
After a number of long discussions, it was decided that English would
be the medium of instruction in India. Many Indians also favoured the decision
of the Government. The British wanted English to be the medium so that
they could get inexpensive clerks and demand for English goods could also
be increased.
After this Charter, English became the official language of India in many
branches of administration. Introduction of English helped Indians in many
ways. It made Indians aware of the western knowledge, ideas and science.
5.7 SUMMARY
• Though the Subsidiary Alliance System was formed in the second half
of the eighteenth century, yet the credit of this policy goes to Lord
Wellesley as it developed from 1798 to 1805 when Lord Wellesley
was the Governor General of India.
• With the help of the subsidiary alliance system, the Company
maintained a large army at the expense of the Nawabs. They could use
this army in annexing other territories or protect their own empire.
Self-Instructional
Material 101
British Governor • Lord Hastings was the Governor General of India from 1813 to 1826.
Generals - II
He followed the footsteps of Lord Wellesley.
• Lord Hastings made a lot of effort to improve the administrative system
NOTES of India. In spite of the fact that he was preoccupied due to a number of
wars, he was successful in making some reforms in the administrative
system.
• Lord William Bentinck became Governor General of India in 1828.
He took a number of steps to suppress sati system. In 1806, he was
appointed as the Governor of Madras.
• William Bentinck did not interfere in the affairs of many of the Indian
states. For instance, he did not interfere in the affairs of Jaipur even
when the British resident, appointed in the state, was attacked during
anarchical situation in the state.
• It was not easy to tackle social problems of the Indian society as the
social norms were related to the religion of the people. Many Governor
Generals wanted to eliminate social evils but they did not do so as they
did not want people to be discontented with the British.
• The youngest Governor General of British India was Lord Dalhousie.
He is best known for annexing regional Indian states into the British
Raj in India on the basis of superfluous reasons.
• The rulers of Indian princely states had the right to adopt a child and
make that child the successor. The British government agreed to this and
made this right official by declaring, ‘Every ruler, under Hindu laws,
is free to nominate his successor, real or adopted son. The Company’s
government is bound to accept this right’. In 1831, the Company
declared, ‘The Government may accept or reject, according to the
situation, the application of Indian rulers to nominate his adopted son
as his heir.’
Self-Instructional
102 Material
British Governor
5.9 SELF ASSESSMENT QUESTIONS AND Generals - II
EXERCISES
Self-Instructional
Material 103
Revolt of 1857 and the
Emergence of Indian
Nationalism UNIT 6 REVOLT OF 1857 AND THE
EMERGENCE OF INDIAN
NOTES
NATIONALISM
Structure
6.0 Introduction
6.1 Objectives
6.2 The Revolt of 1857: Causes and Results
6.3 The First Phase of Freedom Struggle
6.3.1 Formation of Political Associations (Upto 1885)
6.4 Answers to Check Your Progress Questions
6.5 Summary
6.6 Key Words
6.7 Self Assessment Questions and Exercises
6.8 Further Readings
6.0 INTRODUCTION
The Revolt of 1857 began as a mutiny of sepoys of the East India Company’s
army on 10 May 1857, in the town of Meerut, and soon escalated into other
mutinies and civilian rebellions largely in the upper Gangetic plain and central
India, with the major hostilities confined to the present states of Uttar Pradesh,
Bihar, northern Madhya Pradesh, and the Delhi region. The rebellion posed
a considerable threat to Company power in that region, and was contained
only with the fall of Gwalior on 20 June 1858. The rebellion is also known
as India’s First War of Independence, the Great Rebellion, the Indian Mutiny,
the Revolt of 1857, the Uprising of 1857, the Sepoy Rebellion and the
Sepoy Mutiny. The Mutiny was a result of various grievances. However the
flashpoint was reached when the soldiers were asked to bite off the paper
cartridges for their rifles which they believed were greased with animal fat,
namely beef and pork. This was considered to be sacrilegious and went against
the religious sentiments of Hindus and Muslims respectively.
Other regions such as Bengal, the Bombay Presidency, and the Madras
Presidency remained largely calm. In Punjab, the Sikh princes backed the
Company by providing soldiers and support. The large princely states of
Hyderabad, Mysore, Travancore, and Kashmir, as well as the smaller ones
of Rajputana, did not join the rebellion. In some regions, such as Oudh, the
rebellion took on the attributes of a patriotic revolt against European presence.
Maratha leaders, such as Lakshmibai, the Rani of Jhansi, became folk heroes
in the nationalist movement in India half a century later; however, they
themselves generated no coherent ideology for a new order. The rebellion led
Self-Instructional
104 Material
to the dissolution of the East India Company in 1858. It also led the British to Revolt of 1857 and the
Emergence of Indian
reorganize the army, the financial system and the administration in India. The Nationalism
country was thereafter directly governed by the crown as the new British Raj.
NOTES
6.1 OBJECTIVES
In 1857, the British completed hundred years of stay in India since the Battle
of Plassey. During this time the Indian rulers were unhappy for the loss of
former glory and the peasants were discontent at having been reduced to serfs.
The traditional craftsmen and artisans were robbed of their livelihoods. And
now the colonial powers had all control over trade, commerce, and industries.
This was leading to a steady outflow of India’s wealth. This period saw a lot
of aggressiveness from the British government in consolidating the princely
states and strengthening the power of the Colonial rulers.
Dalhousie was responsible for the rising discontent among native states.
Lord Canning, who succeeded him shortly before the revolt, could read the
writing on the wall and said grimly, ‘we must not forget that in the sky of
India, serene as it is, a small cloud may arise, at first no bigger than a man’s
hand, but which, growing larger and larger, may at last threaten to burst and
overwhelm us with ruin’.
Causes of the Revolt of 1857
The following are the causes of the Revolt of 1857.
1. Political Causes
One of the main causes of the Revolt was the Doctrine of Lapse. The
arbitrary ways in which adopted sons were not allowed to succeed led to
much resentment. The states which were affected were Satara (1848), Jaitpur,
Sambhalpur (1849), Baghat (1850), Udepur (1852) Jhansi (1853) and Nagpur
(1854). The annexation that caused the most controversy was that of Awadh
in 1856. Even though the Nawab of Awadh, Wajid Ali Shah was loyal to the
British he was accused of mis-governance. The company’s soldiers were
now upset as they were loyal to the Nawab and the annexation of Awadh
meant that the soldiers and their relatives would have to pay higher taxes.
A new land revenue act was introduced and this meant higher taxes for the
landowners. The Zamindars also were against their lands being confiscated.
Self-Instructional
Material 105
Revolt of 1857 and the The company also stopped the annual pension of Nana Sahib, the adopted son
Emergence of Indian
Nationalism of last Peshwa Baji Rao II. He proved to be a deadly enemy of the British.
There was unemployment also because the people who did not know
English lost their jobs since now Persian and Urdu were no longer acceptable
NOTES
in government jobs. These people were called Ashrafs and held posts in the
judicial and revenue department and they joined the revolt as they wanted
to get back their jobs and prestige.
2. Military Causes
The soldiers or sepoys of the British Army revolted mainly because the
cartridges used in the guns were coated with grease made from cow and pig
fat. Soldiers who belonged to the upper caste among Hindus protested for
the cow fat and the Muslims for the pig fat. Earlier also many sepoys had
shown resentment over having to cross the sea to go to Burma as that was
considered against some Hindu ritual. They were also unhappy with the
pay structure as some high ranking Hindu soldier would get less than a low
ranking English soldier. There were bleak chances of getting promoted also.
Many spend all their service life in the same post. Then there were rumours
of sepoys being forcibly converted to Christianity.
3. Religious Causes
The large number of conversion being made my Christian missionaries
were also cause of concern for the majority of Hindus and Muslims. There
were news of humiliation by British on Hinduism and Islam. The efforts of
some reformists were also seen as conspiracy against Hindu religion and
interference in the internal matters of Hindus. Then a law was enacted in
1850, which also enabled those who converted into Christianity to inherit
ancestral property. This was really opposed by the majority.
4. Administrative and Economic Causes
The complete monopoly of the British on trade and commerce of the country
also led to a lot of resentment. The native trade, handicraft, and other
livelihoods were being destroyed by the monopoly of the British traders.
The revenue system was also breaking the back bone of the local economy.
With the annexation of Indian states consumers for local Indian goods and
industry was not patronized and British goods were promoted and this led
to large scale unemployment. And all these people also joined the revolt.
Nature of the Revolt
The real nature and cause of the revolt is debatable. Each historian has his
own interpretation. The most well-known and acceptable one being the story
of Mangal Pandey, a sepoy of 34th native infantry of Bengal Army. When
he fired at a Sergeant Major at Barrackpore on March 29, 1857 (Bengal), he
Self-Instructional
106 Material
did not realize that he was creating history. He was later executed but this Revolt of 1857 and the
Emergence of Indian
led to wide spread revolts in Meerut where soldiers killed English officers Nationalism
and started marching towards Delhi.
Many historians like Ear Stanley, T.R Homes. Forest, Innes and Sir
NOTES
John Lawrence stated the greased cartridges as the cause of the mutiny and
called it a barbaric act. Some like Sir James Outram and W. Taylor described
it as a conspiracy by Hindus and Muslims. Some called it a national revolt.’
Sir Sayyed Ahmed Khan, described it as a resentment for not having
political organization in his book Asbab-i-Baghawat-i-Hind (causes of the
revolt of India). V.D. Savarkar in his book War of Indian Independence called
it the first war of independence. Even though the revolt began in the army
it soon spread to other areas as well. Some historians were of the view that
this sowed the seeds of the cry for independence. Yet, there are the following
contrarian views:
Events of the Revolt
From Meerut the Sepoys marched to Delhi and declared Bahadur Shah
Zafar as the Emperor of India. Then they attacked Daryaganj near Chandni
Chowk area. Here large number of English lived. Soon Delhi was a battle
ground. In Delhi the leaders failed to lead well and soon the battle in Delhi
was losing ground.
The revolt spread to different parts of the country after the outbreak
in Delhi. Kanpur, Bareilly, Lucknow, Allahabad, Banaras, Faizabad, Jhansi,
Jagdishpur (Arrah), Danapur and Patna were raging. In Lucknow, the revolt
was led by Begum Hazrat Mahal who declared Birjis Qadar, her son, as the
Nawab of Awadh. The British Resident Henry Lawrence was killed. Sir Colin
Campbell tried to save the Europeans with the help of the Gorkha regiment.
From Kanpur, Nana Saheb with the support of Tatya Tope led the
movement. Sir Hugh Wheeler, the commander of garrison surrendered on
June 27, 1857. When Sir Campbell captured Kanpur, Tantia Tope escaped
and joined Rani Laxmibai.
Rani Laxmibai, the ruler of Jhansi was a victim of the Doctrine of Lapse
and revolted since her adopted son was not allowed to ascend to the throne
and her state was being annexed by the British. She was declared ruler of
Jhansi by the soldiers. Tatya Tope and Rani Jhansi together attacked Gwalior.
The Indian soldiers were with them but the ruler of Gwalior, Scindia,
was loyal to the British. He escaped to Agra. Gwalior fell in June 1858. Rani
died fighting on June 17, 1858. Tope was arrested and executed. At Jagdishpur
(Bihar) Kunwar Singh led the revolt and defeated the British forces near Arrah.
At Bareilly, Khan Bahadur Khan led the revolt and in Faizabad, it was
led by Maulvi Ahmadullah and in Patna by Maulvi Pir Ali. They were also part
of the Wahabi movement and were against British so they joined the revolt.
Self-Instructional
Material 107
Revolt of 1857 and the Suppression of the Revolt
Emergence of Indian
Nationalism
1. Delhi
The first phase of the Indian freedom struggle can be thought to have begun
with the germination of nationalist thought among the Indian people. There
is no specific date or decade to signify the origin of Indian nationalism.
However, one can identify several important points and events that were
conducive to the rise of nationalist consciousness in the nineteenth century
culminating in the foundation of the Indian National Congress in 1885.
Major causes associated with the rise of the nationalist movement in India
were as follows:
1. Administrative unification of India: Nationalism was fuelled by
the colonial rule. The British imperialism was the most significant
Self-Instructional
112 Material
factor which added to the rise of nationalism in India. It made the Revolt of 1857 and the
Emergence of Indian
geographical amalgamation of the country conceivable. It brought Nationalism
about a semblance of political unification of the country which made the
Indian people consider themselves as one nation. The British brought
about a uniformity of law and administration throughout the country. NOTES
2. Impact of the Western civilization: The British conquest of India
led to rapid associations with the Western world. Consequently, the
acquaintances with the European countries influenced the Indians
enormously. The nineteenth century in Europe was the century of
nationalism and liberalism. Indians absorbed the ideas of nationalism
and liberalism from the Western countries particularly from Greece,
Italy, Germany and Belgium. Western thinkers namely Rousseau,
Spencer, Bentham, Macaulay, Burke, Mill, and Voltaire also motivated
and encouraged the ideas of freedom among the Indians. Thus, there
was a development of political awareness and awakening among the
Indians. The American Revolution, the French Revolution and other
revolutions in Europe also inspired the Indian masses with new ideals
of liberty, equality and fraternity. Nationalism and patriotism inspired
Indians to fight against oppression and exploitation of several centuries
3. Escalation of English language: The emphasis on English education
in India increased rapidly after the rebellion of 1857. The second half
of the nineteenth century was the age of Liberalism in England. The
study of the dogmatic classics of English fiction from Milton to Mill
embedded the seed of liberalism in the minds of English-educated
Indians. Liberalism included two characteristics—nationalism and
democracy. Thus with the spread of English education, the educated
Indians increasingly became politically conscious. The Britishers
introduced the English language in India in order to fulfil their own
vested interests. They introduced English as they required Indian clerks
educated in English in order to reinforce their rule in India. English
education also aided people of different provinces to come close to one
another. Thus it helped in nurturing the national feelings and political
consciousness among Indians.
4. Increased use of means of communication: The introduction of
telegraphs and railways in 1852 and 1853 respectively gave India
rapid means of transport and communication. The modern means of
communication increased connectivity among Indian villages and the
people from isolated regions had the chance of coming closer to each
other. Networks of communication endorsed trade and commerce and
helped populaces of diverse regions to improve social and intellectual
interaction. The new social and economic associations helped them
access information regarding social affairs and created awareness
among them regarding their social incapacities.
Self-Instructional
Material 113
Revolt of 1857 and the 5. Influence of cultural heritage: Several academicians and religious
Emergence of Indian
Nationalism reformers played their roles in advancing the cause of development
of the nationalist movement in the country. They emphasized the past
grandeur and the rich legacy of India. The study and publication of
NOTES the early Indian literature by the Asiatic Society of Bengal and the
scholars such as Max Muller, Colebrooke, Monier Williams, Hari
Prasad Shastri, Ranade, R.G. Bhandarkar, Rajendra Lai Mittra, etc.,
showed the magnificence of Sanskrit language to the people of India.
Their writings also indoctrinated a sense of pride in past and faith
in the future among them. They also praised great emperors like
Chandragupta, Ashoka and Akbar in their writings.
6. Role of social and religious reformers: Religious and social reformers,
such as, Raja Rammohan Roy, Debendranath Tagore, Keshab Chandra
Sen, Swami Dayanand Saraswati, Ramakrishna Paramhamsa, Iswar
Chandra Vidyasagar, Vivekananda, and others left a remarkable influence
on the people of India. They were also responsible for stimulating the
countrymen to treasure the epitomes of freedom and liberty.
7. Development of Indian press and literature: The printing press played
a major role in the rise of nationalist consciousness by helping people
to form a public opinion. Newspapers like The Bombay Samachar, The
Kesari, The Amrit Bazar Patrika, Indian Mirror, The Hindu Patriot,
The Hindu, The Bengalee, etc., immensely swayed the people of India
and thus left a permanent mark on the political life of the country. The
works of Hem Chandra Banerjee, R.C. Dutta, Din Bandhu Mitra, Navin
Chandra Sen, Bankim Chandra Chaterjee, and Rabindra Nath Tagore also
affected the minds of the people. The Anand Math of Bankim Chandra
Chaterjee has rightly been observed as the Bible of modern Bengali
nationalism. Thus the literature of the patriots and intellectuals brought
about a rebellion in the minds of the Indians. These radical minds were
accountable for the growth of Indian nationalism.
8. Economic exploitation: The primary objective of the British rule
in India was economic exploitation. They took away raw materials
from India and brought manufactured goods. The policy of economic
exploitation ruined the Indian industries. Britishers’ free trade policy
proved disastrous for Indian trade and industries. Indian industries
failed to compete in the international market because they were
deprived of the advantages and privileges that British industries had.
Moreover, the economic system of India was moulded according to the
needs of the people of England. Thus the interests of the Indian people
were completely ignored and the relationship between the Indians and
the Britishers strained further.
9. Discrimination against Indians in the recruitment to government
services: Indians faced severe discrimination during the British rule
Self-Instructional
114 Material
as far as the recruitment to government services were concerned. The Revolt of 1857 and the
Emergence of Indian
proclamation of Queen Victoria in 1858 acknowledged that Indians, Nationalism
henceforth, would be selected to high posts on the basis of their
excellence regardless of their caste, religion, or race. But this policy
was not properly executed. The unfair policies of British government NOTES
created a widespread discontentment among the educated people of
India.
10. Events during the reign of Lord Lytton: The period from 1870 to
1884 was extremely tumultuous and witnessed the commencement of
Indian nationalism. The unfair policies and directives during the reign of
Lord Lytton strengthened the nationalist movement. He conducted his
famous Delhi Darbar in 1877, at the time when people of South India
were suffering from the effects of a major famine. There was widespread
discontentment among the Indian people when the British government
removed import duties on British textile imports in order to please
the textile manufacturers of England. Indians considered the action
as an evidence of the British aspirations to deteriorate growing textile
industry of India. The second Afghan War had a devastating effect on
the Indian economy. Furthermore, Lytton passed the Vernacular Press
Act in 1878 so as to suppress the growing national consciousness among
the Indian people. People from all sections of society condemned
the discriminatory provisions of the Act. It has been pointed out that
the Act was a regressive and impractical measure detrimental to the
future progress of India. At the same time in 1878, the government
announced new guidelines decreasing the maximum age limit for sitting
in the Indian Civil Service Examination from 21 years to 19. All these
measures created extensive discontentment among the Indians.
11. Ilbert Bill Argument: During the viceroyalty of Lord Ripon in British
India, a controversy arose concerning the Ilbert Bill. Ripon tried to pass
a law called Ilbert Bill which would provide Indian district magistrates
and sessions judges the jurisdiction to try British offenders in criminal
cases at the district level. However, the bill faced extreme opposition
in Britain as well as by the British settlers in India. Consequently,
government had to amend the bill. This increased dissatisfaction among
Indians who were now subjugated to the authority of British people.
6.3.1 Formation of Political Associations (upto 1885)
The British domination gave rise to some forces, which ultimately challenged
the British imperialism. For instance, the British forced English as medium of
instruction in the education system of India, this went against the British as
Indians came across the ideas of nationalism, political rights and democracy.
These ideas resulted in a number of political associations, which were not
known to Indians like then.
Self-Instructional
Material 115
Revolt of 1857 and the Many political associations were formed after 1836. In 1866, Dadabhai
Emergence of Indian
Nationalism Naoroji organized the East-India Association in London. The objective of
this association was to influence British ‘to promote Indian welfare’. After
some time, he opened its branches in various cities of India.
NOTES
Political associations in Bengal
Raja Rammohan Roy was the first Indian leader to start socio-political
reform movements in India. He was greatly influenced by Western ideas.
He supported a number of popular movements all over the world. In 1821,
when constitutional government was established in Spain, Rammohan Roy
celebrated the event in Calcutta.
Rammohan Roy demanded liberty of the Press, appointment of Indians
in civil courts and other higher posts, codification of law etc. The task of
organizing political associations was left to the associates of Rammohan Roy.
(i) Bangabhasha Prakasika Sabha: The first such association
called ‘Bangabhasha Prakasika Sabha’ was formed in 1836. The
association discussed various topics related to the policy and
administration of the Government. It also sought redressal by
sending petitions to the Government.
(ii) Zamindary Association: Formed in July 1837, it was more
popularly known as the Landholders’ Society. It was founded
with an objective to safeguard the interests of the landlords in
Bihar, Bengal and Orissa. Although limited in its objectives,
the Landholders’ Society marks the beginning of an organized
political activity. It used the methods of constitutional agitation for
the redressal of grievances. The Landholders’ Society of Calcutta
cooperated with the British India Society, which was founded by
Mr. Adams in London in the year 1839. The assocaition functioned
till 1844.
(iii) Bengal British India Society: This society was formed in
April 1843. The objective of this society was the ‘collection and
dissemination of information relating to the actual condition of
the people of British India...and to employ such other means of
peaceful and lawful character as may appear calculated to secure
the welfare, extend the just rights, and advance the interests of
all classes of our fellow subjects.’ This organization merged with
Zamindary Association in 1851 and formed the British Indian
Association.
(iv) British Indian Association: Due to the failure of the Landholder’s
Society and the Bengal British India Society, the two associations
were merged on 29 October 1851 to form a new British Indian
Association. This association was dominated by members of the
Self-Instructional
landed aristocracy and the primary objective of this association
116 Material
was to safeguard the interests of this class. However, the Revolt of 1857 and the
Emergence of Indian
association followed a liberal approach and when the time came Nationalism
for the renewal of the Charter of the East India Company, it sent a
petition to the Parliament in 1852. In this petition, it appealed for
the establishment of a separate legislature of a popular character, NOTES
separation of judicial from executive functions, reduction in the
salaries of higher officers, abolition of salt duty, abkari and stamp
duties. The appeals of the association were partially met and the
Charter Act of 1853 provided for the addition of six members
to the Governor-General’s Council for legislative purposes. The
British Indian Association continued its existence as a political
body till 20th century even though it was over-shadowed by Indian
National Congress.
(v) India League: Babu Sisir Kumar Ghose founded this association
in September 1875. The objective of this association was
‘stimulating the sense of nationalism amongst the people’. This
association also aimed at promoting political education.
Indian Association: Within a year, the India League was
(vi)
superseded by the Indian Association. It was founded by Ananda
Mohan Bose and Surendranath Banerjee on 26 July 1876. The
Indian Association hoped to attract not only ‘the middle classes’
but also the masses, and therefore, it kept its annual subscription
at `5 as opposed to the subscription of `50 p.a. fixed by the British
Indian Association. Soon, the Indian Association became ‘the
centre of the leading representatives of the educated community
of Bengal.’ The Indian Association merged with the National
Congress in December 1886.
Lytton’s unpopular measures whipped up political activity in India.
A regulation of 1876 reduced the maximum age for appearing in the ICS
Examination from 21 to 19 years. Since the examination was held only in
London, young Indians had to face innumerable difficulties. The Indian
Association took up this problem and organized an all-India agitation against
it, which was popularly known as the Indian Civil Service Agitation.
Political associations in Bombay
Bombay Association: Bombay Association was founded on the lines of
(i)
the British India Association of Calcutta on 26 August 1852. The Bombay
Association sent a petition to the British Parliament urging the formation
of new legislative councils which should have Indian representative as
well. The Association condemned the policy of exclusion of Indians
from higher services, and lavish expenditure on sinecure posts given to
Europeans. This association did not survive for long.
Self-Instructional
Material 117
Revolt of 1857 and the (ii) Bombay Presidency Association: Policies of Lytton and Ilbert
Emergence of Indian
Nationalism Bill controversy caused political turmoil in Bombay. This led to the
formation of Bombay Presidency Association in the year 1885. It was
formed by the popularly called brothers-in-law: Mehta, Telang and
NOTES Tyabji, representing the three chief communities of Bombay town.
(iii) Poona Sarvajanik Sabha: This was established at Poona by Justice
Ranade and others in the 1870s, with the objective to serve as a bridge
between the Government and the people. The Bombay Presidency
Association and the Poona Sarvajanik Sabha worked in close
collaboration.
Political associations in Madras
Madras Native Association: This was set up as a branch of British
(i)
Indian Association, Calcutta on 26 February 1852. The Madras Native
Association also sent petition to the Parliament on the eve of the
passing of the Charter Act of 1853. It made demands similar to that of
the British Indian Association and the Bombay Association. However,
the Madras Native Association was not popular.
(ii) Madras Mahajana Sabha: This was formed by M. Vijayraghavachari,
G. Subramanya lyer, Ananda Charlu, Rangayya Naidu and others
on 16 May 1884. It was aimed at coordinating the activities of local
associations and providing a focus for the non-official intelligence
spreading through the Presidency. It held two popular conferences: one
was from 29th December to 31st December 1884, and second on 1st
and 2nd January 1885. It demanded expansion of legislative councils,
representation of Indians in legislative councils, separation of judicial
from revenue functions, etc.
1. One of the main causes of the Revolt was the Doctrine of Lapse.
2. The soldiers or sepoys of the British Army revolted mainly because the
cartridges used in the guns were coated with grease made from cow
and pig fat. Soldiers who belonged to the upper caste among Hindus
Self-Instructional protested for the cow fat and the Muslims for the pig fat.
118 Material
3. The two causes associated with the rise of the nationalist movement in Revolt of 1857 and the
Emergence of Indian
India are administrative unification of India and impact of the Western Nationalism
civilization.
4. Ilbert Bill aimed to provide Indian district magistrates and sessions
NOTES
judges the jurisdiction to try British offenders in criminal cases at the
district level.
5. Bombay Association was founded on the lines of the British India
Association of Calcutta on 26 August 1852.
6.5 SUMMARY
• In 1857, the British completed hundred years of stay in India since the
Battle of Plassey. During this time the Indian rulers were unhappy for
the loss of former glory and the peasants were discontent at having
been reduced to serfs.
• One of the main causes of the Revolt was the Doctrine of Lapse. The
arbitrary ways in which adopted sons were not allowed to succeed led
to much resentment.
• The soldiers or sepoys of the British Army revolted mainly because the
cartridges used in the guns were coated with grease made from cow
and pig fat.
• The complete monopoly of the British on trade and commerce of the
country also led to a lot of resentment.
• The revolt was not a national event and hence failed to leave an impact.
The revolt had no effect on the southern states of India.
• The base of the company’s hold on India was shaken by the Revolt of
1857. Thereafter a stronger mechanism and administrative policy was
placed in order to strengthen the British rule in India.
• The presence of the British in India can be divided into two phases.
One phase was between 1772 and 1858, during which the East India
Company traded with help from British army and the second phase
was from 1858 to 1947, when the British Crown ruled.
• Till the revolt the Charter Act of 1853 allowed the East India Company
to rule India. After the Revolt of 1857 the British Empire ended the
company’s rule and proclaimed India to be part of the British crown.
• The first phase of the Indian freedom struggle can be thought to have
begun with the germination of nationalist thought among the Indian
people. There is no specific date or decade to signify the origin of
Indian nationalism.
Self-Instructional
Material 119
Revolt of 1857 and the • Nationalism was fuelled by the colonial rule. The British imperialism
Emergence of Indian
Nationalism was the most significant factor which added to the rise of nationalism
in India.
Self-Instructional
120 Material
Revolt of 1857 and the
6.8 FURTHER READINGS Emergence of Indian
Nationalism
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House. NOTES
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Self-Instructional
Material 121
Formation of the Indian
National Congress BLOCK - III
THE FIRST PHASE OF INDIAN NATIONAL
CONGRESS 1885 – 1919 AND SOME
NOTES
PERSONALITIES IN INDIA
7.0 INTRODUCTION
7.1 OBJECTIVES
The Indian National Congress was formed due to the efforts of a number of
people. Presence of number of political associations across the country, and
spread of the ideals of patriotism and nationalism prepared the foundation
of the Indian National Congress. It was formed in the year 1885 but its
origin is not known. According to Dr. Pattabhi Sitaramayya, its origin is
‘shrouded in mystery’. However, many people believe that A.O. Hume laid
its foundation under Lord Dufferin. He formed the Indian National Congress
to ‘provide a ‘safety-valve’ to the anticipated or actual discontentment of
the Indian intelligentsia and to form a quasi-constitutional party similar to
Her Majesty’s Opposition in England.’ According to W.C. Banerjee, the
First Congress President, the Indian National Congress was formed by Lord
Dufferin, Viceroy of India. He also believed that Lord Dufferin formed it
Self-Instructional
Material 123
Formation of the Indian because he wanted a political organization which can understand the ‘real
National Congress
wishes’ of the people so that the British government could prevent political
outbursts in the country.
On 1 March 1883, in an open letter, Hume had appealed to the students
NOTES
of Calcutta University to set up an organization in India. He officially clarified
that his objective was ‘to form a constitutional method to prevent the spread of
dissatisfaction caused by western ideas, education, inventions, and machines
and it was essential to take measures for the security and continuity of the
British Government’. Some scholars believe that Ripon advised Hume to
form an organization of educated Indians. Recently, some scholars analysed
Dufferin’s correspondence to Hume as well as the activities of the early
nationalists, they concluded that the theory of ‘safety valve’ is a myth.
The Indian National Congress was founded on 28 December 1885 at Sir
Tej Pal Sanskrit Vidyalaya, Bombay. It will not be correct to say that it was
a sudden event rather it was as Bipan Chandra states, ‘the culmination of a
process of political awakening that had its beginnings in the 1860s and 1870s
and took a major leap forward in the late 1870s and early 1880s’. Also, a lot
of attempts were made by Indian Nationalists for the formation of a political
organization on all-India scale. For instance, two National Conferences were
organized by Indian Association.
A.O. Hume succeeded in forming an All India Party, which was
attended by 72 delegates. Most of the Indian leaders could not attend this
session as a National Conference was going on in Calcutta at the same time.
The objectives of both these organizations were same. The Indian National
Conference was later merged into the National Congress. It would be wrong
to believe that he laid the foundation of the Indian National Congress single-
handedly as many people were involved in its formation. Most of the leaders
were able to accept Hume because they felt that he would not be biased
towards any region or caste. It is because he did not belong to any of these
groups and he had a sincere love for India.
Some of the members of the Indian National Congress were Pherozeshah
Mehta, W.C. Banerji, Anandamohan Bose, Badruddin Tyabji, Surendranath
Banerji, and Romesh Chandra Dutt. This association was different from
others as none of the earlier associations had complete independence as their
agenda. The Congress made some demands, which can be divided into three
categories: political, administrative and economic.
(i) Political demands
• Greater power to the Supreme Council and local Legislative Council
• Discussion on budget to be held by the council
• Representation of the council through local bodies like Universities
and Chambers of Commerce
Self-Instructional
124 Material
• Creation of Legislative Assembly in Punjab, Awadh (NWP) and North- Formation of the Indian
National Congress
West Frontier Province (NWFP)
(ii) Economic demands
The Congress sessions, between 1855 and 1905, regularly passed resolutions NOTES
for:
• Reduction in land revenue
• Establishment of agricultural banks
• Reduction in home charge and military expenditure
• Ending unfair tariffs and excise duties
• Enquiring the causes behind India’s poverty and famines
• Providing more funds for technical education
• Development of Indian industries
• Better treatment for Indian coolies in foreign countries
• Change in forest laws so that tribal can use forest
(iii) Administrative demands
• ICS examination in India as well as England
• Increase Indian volunteer force
• Understanding of Indian needs on the part of administration
• Separation of Judiciary from Executive power and extension of trial
by jury
• Higher posts in the army for Indians
Objectives of the Congress
The primary objective of the Congress was to make people feel that they
belong to a single nation—India. The diversity in India in terms of caste,
creed, religion, tradition, language made this a difficult task. However, it was
not impossible. Many important people like Pherozshah Mehta, Dadabhai
Naoroji, K.T. Telang and Dinshaw Wacha, attended the first session of the
Indian National Congress. The objectives of the Congress laid down by W.C.
Banerjee, the President of the first session of the Indian National Congress,
are as follows:
• Promoting personal intimacy and friendship among people who are
working for the cause of the country
• Eradicating prejudices related to race, creed and provinces through
friendly interaction
• Consolidating the sentiments of national unity
Self-Instructional
Material 125
Formation of the Indian • Maintaining authoritative record of the educated Indians’ views on the
National Congress
prominent issues of the day
• Determining methods by which native politicians can work towards
NOTES public interest during the next twelve months
• Training and organizing public opinion
• Formulating and presenting popular demands before the government
through petitions
The Congress was supported by people of all religions. W.C. Banerjee,
the first President of the Indian National Congress, was an Indian Christian.
The second President was Dadabhai Naoroji, who was a Parsee. The third
President was Badruddin Tayabji who was a Muslim. The fourth and fifth
Presidents were George Yule and William Baderburn who were Britishers.
Early Nationalists and their Programmes
We have already seen that some of the educated Indians were playing major
roles in cultivating a sense of nationalism. Some of the early nationalist,
also known as the moderates, were the ones who set up the Indian national
Congress. Here are some of the prominent names:
1. Allan Octavian Hume (1829-1912): He was of Scottish descent. He
joined the Bengal Civil Service in 1849 and made a lot of efforts to
remove the social maladies of the country. His superiors did not favour
him, thus, he had to retire in 1882. He took initiative to form the Indian
National Congress in 1885. In 1889, he helped in setting up the British
Committee of the Congress in London as well. This committee started
its journal named ‘India’.
2. Dadabhai Naoroji (1825-1917): He was known as ‘the Grand Old
Man of India’. He was associated with the Indian National Congress
right from its inception and became its president thrice: in 1886, 1893
and 1906. He was the first Indian to become a Member of the House
of Commons on the Liberal Party’s ticket. During his stay in England,
from 1855 to 1869, he educated British public on Indian affairs through
the London Indian Association and the East India Association. A book
by Naoroji ‘Poverty and Un-British Rule in India’ was published in
1901. This book had statistics to prove that the drain of wealth from
India to Great Britain was the cause of growing poverty in India.
3. Pherozeshah Mehta (1845-1915): He was born in a middle class
Parsi family of Bombay. He was one of the founders of the Bombay
Presidency Association and the Indian National Congress. He was also
a pioneer of the Swadeshi and founded the famous Bombay Chronicle
in 1913.
Self-Instructional
126 Material
4. Surendranath Banerjea (1848-1925): He was an eminent leader Formation of the Indian
National Congress
who passed the ICS examination in 1871 and started his career as an
Assistant Magistrate at Sylhet. A controversy with the Government
led him to leave the job. He was the founder of the Indian Association
in 1876. In 1883, he convened a National Conference which was NOTES
the precursor of the Indian National Congress. He presided over the
Congress sessions twice. He was elected the first President of the Indian
National Liberal Federation in 1918 and in 1921, he became a minister
in Bengal.
5. Badruddin Tyabji (1844-1906): He was the first Indian barrister
at Bombay High Court and was nominated to Bombay Legislative
Council in 1882. He was one of the founders of the Bombay Presidency
Association and the Indian National Congress. He was the President
at the third Congress session in Madras in 1887. He helped Muslims
in the causes of educational advancement and social reforms as the
Secretary and then as the President of the Anjuman-i-Islam of Bombay.
He strongly pleaded for the education of women.
6. Womesh Chander Banerjee (1844-1906): He represented the Calcutta
University in the Bengal Legislative Council. He was the first Congress
President at Bombay in 1885. He left India in 1902 to settle in England
to practise before the Privy Council. He financed the British Committee
of the Congress in London and its journal ‘India’.
7. Madan Mohan Malaviya (1861-1946): He was born and educated
at Allahabad. He started his career as a lawyer and as an able
Parliamentarian. He was a member of the Provincial and Central
Legislatures for several terms. He promoted the use of indigenous
products and helped in organizing the Indian Industrial Conference
and the UP Industrial Association at Allahabad in 1907. In 1926, he
organized his own Nationalist Party. He also established the Banaras
Hindu University and for several years served as its Vice-Chancellor.
8. Tej Bahadur Sapru (1872-1949): He was a conscientious and
successful lawyer who specialized in constitutional law. He helped
Mrs Besant to build up the Central Hindu College at Banaras and to
establish the Banaras Hindu University in collaboration with Malaviya.
He entered politics during the Home Rule movement and associated
in drafting Nehru Committee Report of 1928. He participated in the
Round Table conferences as well.
9. Gopal Krishna Gokhale (1866-1915): He was a follower of
Mahadev Govind Ranade who was popularly known as the Socrates
of Maharashtra. He joined the Deccan Educational Society founded by
Ranade. He edited the quarterly journal of the Poona Sarvajanik Sabha.
He played a great part, officially and unofficially, in the formulation of
Self-Instructional
Material 127
Formation of the Indian the Minto-Morley Reforms of 1909. His principles attracted Gandhiji,
National Congress
who became Gokhale’s pupil. In 1905, he laid the foundation of the
‘Servants of India Society’ for the training of national missionaries and
to promote, by constitutional means, the true interests of the Indian
NOTES people.
10. Kashinath Trimbak Telang (1850-1893): He was a co-founder of the
Bombay Presidency Association. He was one of the leading men who
founded the Congress and became its first ‘hardworking secretary’. He
was active in the sphere of social reforms and was the President of the
National Social Conference. He rose to the position of a High Court
Judge.
11. Rashbehari Ghose (1845-1921): After obtaining the Law degree,
he enrolled himself as an advocate at the Calcutta High Court. He
became a member of the Bengal Legislative Council in 1889. He was
the Chairman, Reception Committee of the Congress, in its Calcutta
session in 1906. He was also the President-elect for the Surat session
of the Congress in 1907. He was deputed by the Congress to proceed
with its delegation to England and forward its point of view before the
British Government.
Since its inception in 1885 till the time India won its Independence
in 1947, the Congress was the largest and most prominent Indian political
organization. In its initial stages, the Indian National Congress was a political
unit, however, in due course of time it supported the cause of social reform
and human development. The Indian National Congress is said to have also
provided impetus to the spirit of nationalism. In its early stages, there was
unity in the Indian National Congress and it was marked by the learning of
democratic methods and techniques. The leaders of the INC believed that
the British government was responsive to their needs and were willing to
make changes accordingly. However, over a period of time, the Indian masses
became disillusioned with the concept of nationalism. They suddenly became
aware that their petitions not as fruitful as expected and that the British subtly
avoided taking any action. Even in the phase of dissatisfaction, there were
some Congress leaders who believed in the methods of the British government
and came to be known as moderates. Since these moderate leaders failed to
produce desired results, a new stream of leaders came up who were known
as the extremists. These extremists disagreed with the traditional methods
of moderates that were limited to writing petitions and conducting agitations
to get themselves heard. The extremists were not satisfied with a dominion
status and demanded complete independence from the British government.
Due to the low-level of political awareness, the achievements of
moderate nationalists were not immense. However, by 1907, the moderates
were pushed to the background with the emergence of an extremist class in
the Congress. The failure to produce any results for the welfare of the people
Self-Instructional
128 Material
resulted in the creation of an extremist group and the division of Congress Formation of the Indian
National Congress
into two factions. Leaders of moderate phase mainly came from Bombay,
Bengal and Madras. For example, Badruddin Tayabji, Dada Bhai Naoroji,
Pherozshah Mehta, Gopal Krishna Gokhale, K.T. Telang and Govind Ranade
were from Bombay. Wumesh Chander Banerji, Anand Mohan Bose. Surendra NOTES
Nath Banerji and Ramesh Chandra Dutta were from Bengal. Similarly,
Subamanya Ayer, Anand Charlu, and Raghavacharya were from Madras.
Very few leaders like Madan Mohan Malaviya and Pundit D. P. Dhar came
from north India. These moderate leaders treated British rule as a blessing.
They sincerely believed that the British rule would make India a developed
democratic and liberal country. They had the illusion that the British would
introduce modern institutions and remove superstitious belief. They saw
England as a source of inspiration and treated English as their political, guru.
Many of these nationalist leaders had anglicized life style. All they wanted
and expected from the British was a ‘reform package’ for Indians.
The moderates believed in peaceful methods to get their demands
across. They believed in writing petitions and peaceful protests. Though the
Moderates failed to make the same impact as the extremists, they petitioned
a number of reforms during this time.
1. Constitutional reforms: The Moderates demanded the expansion
and reform of the existing Legislative Councils from 1885 to 1892.
They demanded the introduction of the system of direct elections and
an increase in the number of members and powers of the Legislative
Councils. It is true that their agitation forced the Government to pass
the Indian Councils Act of 1892 but the moderates were not satisfied
with what was given to the people of India. No wonder, they declared
the Act of 1892 as a ‘hoax.’ They demanded a large share for the Indians
in the Legislative Councils. By the beginning of the 20th century, the
Moderates put forward the claim for Swarajya or self-government
within the British Empire on the model of the other self-governing
colonies like Australia and Canada. This demand was made from the
Congress platform by Gokhale in 1905 and by Dadabhai Naoroji in
1906.
2. Demand for economic reforms: The Congress opposed the British
attempt to develop in India the basic characteristics of a colonial
economy, namely, the transformation of India into a supplier of raw
materials, a market for British manufactures and a field of investment
for foreign capital. Moderates took note of all the three forms of
contemporary colonial economic exploitation, namely through trade,
industry and finance. They organized a powerful all-India agitation
against the abandonment of tariff-duties on imports and against the
imposition of cotton excise duties. The moderates carried on agitation
for the reduction of heavy land revenue payments. They urged the
Self-Instructional
Material 129
Formation of the Indian Government to provide cheap credit to the peasantry through agricultural
National Congress
banks and to make available irrigation facilities on a large scale. They
asked for improvement in the conditions of work of the plantation
labourers. They demanded a radical change in the existing pattern of
NOTES taxation and expenditure which put a heavy burden on the poor while
leaving the rich, especially the foreigners, with a very light load. They
demanded the abolition of salt tax which hit the poor and lower middle
classes hard. The moderates complained of India’s growing poverty
and economic backwardness and put the blame on the politics of the
British Government. They blamed the Government for the destruction
of the indigenous industries like the traditional handicrafts industries
in the country. They demanded the rapid development of the modern
industries which would help in the removal of India’s poverty. They
wanted the Government to give tariff protection to the Indian industries.
They advocated the use of Swadeshi goods and the boycott of British
goods. They demanded that the economic drain of India by England
must stop. Most of them opposed the large scale investment of foreign
capital in the Indian railways, plantations and industries on the ground
that it would lead to the suppression of Indian capitalists and the further
strengthening of the British hold on India’s economy and polity.
3. Administrative and miscellaneous reforms: Moderates criticized
the individual administrative measures and worked hard to reform the
administrative system which was ridden with corruption, inefficiency
and oppression. They demanded the Indianization of the higher
grades of the administrative services; the demand was put forward
on economic, political and moral grounds. Economically, the high
salaries paid to the European put a heavy burden on Indian finance,
and contributed to the economic drain. Indians of similar qualifications
could be employed on lower salaries. Europeans sent a large part of
their salaries back to England and also got their pensions in England.
That added to the drain of wealth from India. Politically, the European
civil servant ignored the needs of the Indians and favoured the European
capitalists at the cost of their Indian counterparts. It was hoped that
the Indianization of the services would make the administration more
responsive to Indian needs. Morally, the existing system dwarfed the
Indian character reducing the tallest Indian to permanent inferiority in
his own country. Moderates demanded the separation of the judiciary
from the executive so that the people might get some protection from
the arbitrary acts of police and bureaucracy. They were opposed to
the policy of disarming the people of India by the Government. They
opposed the aggressive foreign policy against India’s neighbours and
protested against the policy of the annexation of Burma, the attack upon
Afghanistan and the suppression of the tribal people in North-Western
Self-Instructional
130 Material
India. They wanted the Government to spend more money on the spread Formation of the Indian
National Congress
of education in the country. They also took up the cause of the Indians
who had been compelled by poverty to migrate to the British colonies
in search of employment. In many of these foreign lands they were
subjected to severe oppression and racial discrimination. NOTES
4. Defence of Civil Rights: They opposed the restrictions imposed by the
government on the modern civil rights, namely the freedom of speech
and the press. Almost from the beginning of the 19th century, politically
conscious Indians had been attracted to modern civil rights especially
the freedom of the press. As early as 1824, Raja Ram Mohan Roy
had protested against a regulation restricting the freedom of the press.
In the period from 1870 to 1918, the main political task was that of
politicization of nationalist ideology. The press was the chief instrument
for carrying out this task. Indian newspapers began to find their feet in
1870’s.The Vernacular Press Act of 1878, directed only against Indian
language newspapers, was conceived in great secrecy and passed at a
single sitting of the Imperial Legislative Council. The act provided for
the confiscation of the printing press, paper and other materials of a
newspaper if the government believed that it was publishing seditious
material and had flouted an official warning. Indian nationalist opinion
firmly opposed the Act. Various public bodies and the press also
campaigned against the Act. Consequently, it was repealed in 1881 by
Lord Ripon. Surendranath Banerjee was the first Indian to go to jail
in performance of his duty as a journalist. But, the man who is most
frequently associated with the struggle for the freedom of press during
the nationalist movement was Bal Gangadhar Tilak. In 1897, B. G. Tilak
and many other leaders were arrested and sentenced to long terms of
imprisonment for condemning the government through their speeches
and writings. The Natu brothers of Poona were deported without trial.
The entire country protested against this attack on the liberties of the
people. The arrest of Tilak marked the beginning of new phase of the
nationalist movement.
Failure of the Moderates
The basic weakness of the moderates lay their narrow social base. Their
movement did not have wide appeal. In fact; the leaders lacked political faith
in the masses. The area of their influence was limited to the urban immunity.
As they did not have the support of the masses, they declared that the time
was not ripe for throwing out a challenge to the foreign rulers. That was likely
to invite mature repression. However, it must not be presumed that moderate
leaders fought for their narrow interests. Their programmes and policies
championed the cause of all sections of the Indian people and represented
nation-wide interests against colonial exploitation.
Self-Instructional
Material 131
Formation of the Indian Critically evaluating the work of the Moderates, it appears that
National Congress
they did not achieve much success. Very few of the reforms advocated by
them were carried out. The foreign rulers treated them with contempt. The
moderates failed to acquire any roots among the common people and even
NOTES those who joined the Congress with high hopes were feeling more and more
disillusioned. The politics of the moderates was described as ‘halting and
half-hearted.’ Their methods were described as those of mendicancy or
beggary through prayers and petitions.
Moderates failed to keep pace with the yearnings and aspirations of
the people. They did not realize that the political and economic interests
of the Indians and the British clashed and consequently the British people
could not be expected to give up their rights and privileges in India without
a fight. Moreover, it was during this period that a movement started among
the Muslims to keep away from the Congress and that ultimately resulted
in the establishment of Pakistan. In spite of their best efforts, the moderates
were not able to win over the Muslims.
The social composition of Congress remained, by and large the same
till 1905. A. O. Hume tried his best to bring Muslims and peasants into the
Congress fold, but with little success. The Muslim elite, especially from
Aligarh, felt that they would lose from the elected councils and that the Hindus
would dominate (Hindus were in majority in most places). The Muslim elite
also opposed competitive examinations for the recruitment into civil services,
as it was based on modern English education and the Muslims were far behind
the Hindus in this field. They feared Hindu domination in the civil services
too. All these factors kept Muslims away from the Congress; neither did the
Congress give a serious look into inducting Muslims. This was a big mistake,
as they realized in later years.
Thus, it is clear that the Congress was not only concerned with the
issues of zamindars, capitalist and English educated professionals, but it
also showed concern for almost all the sections of the society. The objectives
of the Congress were never the reason for calling it ‘moderate’, rather its
methods and style of functioning. The early Congress leaders believed in the
constitutional method of struggle, i.e., through petitions, speeches and articles.
One important reason for this was the social composition of early Congress
leaders. They came from successful professional background (most of them
were lawyers, journalists and academicians) and their personal life-style was
anglicised. Perhaps, the first lesson they learned from the British was how to
write applications and give petitions. Moreover, politics, for most of them,
remained a part-time affair.
Self-Instructional
132 Material
Formation of the Indian
Check Your Progress National Congress
The closing decade of the nineteenth century and early years of the twentieth
century witnessed the emergence of a new and younger group within the
Indian National Congress, which was sharply critical of the ideology and
methods of the old leadership. These ‘angry young men’ advocated the
adoption of Swaraj as the goal of the Congress, which was to be achieved
by more self-reliant and independent methods. The new group came to be
called the extremists in contrast to the older one which began to be referred
to as the moderates.
The militant form of nationalism was first found in the teachings and
preaching of Bankim Chandra Chatterjee and Swami Dayananda Saraswati.
Bankim Chandra Chatterjee was inspired by the Bhagavad Gita and
visualized a united India. Swami Vivekananda, who was called the prophet
of nationalism by Bipin Chandra Pal, added spiritual dimension to the idea
of nationalism. He inspired the youth of his time, more than anyone else.
The root of extremism lies in two important factors—the policies of colonial
rule, and the failure of moderate leaders to attract younger generation and
common people.
7.3.1 Factors that Led to the Rise of Extremism
Following are the factors led to the rise of extremists:
• Enlightenment of the true nature of British rule
• Civil Services examinations was disallowed
• Partition of Bengal
• The Indian Council Act, 1892, failed to introduce an elective element
in India and provided for selection of some members
• Adoption of the Tariff and Cotton Duties Act of 1894 and 1896 by the
Indians
• Curbing freedom of press (1904) and controlling universities through
Indian University Act (1904)
• Defeat of Russia (1904-05) by Japan inspired the educated youth
Self-Instructional
Material 133
Formation of the Indian • Circulation of Vernacular newspaper went up from 2,99,000 in 1885 to
National Congress
8,17,000 in 1905. Some of the popular journals like Kesari (Marathi)
and Bangabhasi (Bengali) opposed the moderate Congress
Self-Instructional
134 Material
provided under law in the Famine Relief Code. Through his paper, Kesari, he Formation of the Indian
National Congress
made an appeal to the people to refuse to pay taxes. He wrote angrily, ‘Can
you not be bold even in the grip of death’. He also started Boycott Movement
on the issue of countervailing Cotton Excise Duty Act of 1896. It should be
clearly understood that the extremists’ demand for Swaraj was a demand for NOTES
‘complete freedom from foreign control and full independence to manage
national affairs without any foreign restraints’. The Swaraj of the moderate
leaders was merely a demand for colonial self-government within the Empire.
The methods employed by the two groups (moderates and extremists) were
different in their tempo and approach. The extremists had no faith in the
benevolence of the British public or parliament, nor were they convinced
of the efficacy of merely holding conferences. The extremists also affirmed
their faith in passive resistance, mass agitation and strong will to suffer or
make self-sacrifices. The new leadership sought to create a passionate love
for liberty, accompanied by a spirit of sacrifice and a readiness to suffer for
the cause of the country. They strove to root out from the people’s mind the
omnipotence of the ruler, and instead give them self-reliance and confidence
in their own strength. They had deep faith in the strength of the masses
and they planned to achieve Swaraj through mass action. They, therefore,
pressed for political work among the masses and for direct political action
by the masses. The extremists advocated boycott of the foreign goods, use
of swadeshi goods, national education and passive resistance.
Self-Instructional
Material 135
Formation of the Indian 5. The issue of Swadeshi Movement widened the gap between the
National Congress
moderates and the extremists. The extremists wanted to spread the
movement in the entire country and complete non-cooperation with
the government. Lajpat Rai and Tilak were more aggressive in their
NOTES ideas and plans.
7.5 SUMMARY
Self-Instructional
136 Material
• The root of extremism lies in two important factors—the policies of Formation of the Indian
National Congress
colonial rule, and the failure of moderate leaders to attract younger
generation and common people.
• The new turn in Indian politics found expression in two forms—the NOTES
formation of the extremist group within the Congress and the growth
of terrorism or revolutionary movement in the country at large. Four
prominent Congress leaders, including Lokamanya Tilak, Bipin
Chandra Pal, Aurobindo Ghosh and Lala Lajpat Rai, defined the creed
of the new group, gave articulate form to its aspirations and guided its
operations.
Self-Instructional
Material 137
Formation of the Indian
National Congress 7.8 FURTHER READINGS
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
NOTES Publishing House.
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Self-Instructional
138 Material
Partition of Bengal and
8.0 INTRODUCTION
In this unit, we will discuss the partition of Bengal. The Partition of Bengal
in 1905 was carried out on the orders of Viceroy Lord Curzon. The British
reason for the partition was that the province was simple too big to be
administered. However, Indians suspected that the partition was carried out
as part of the divide and rule policy of the British imperialists. The Partition
of Bengal sparked the first real mass movement of opposition to the British,
and transformed the Indian National Congress from a party of middle and
upper class lawyers to an organization with nation-wide appeal.
8.1 OBJECTIVES
Self-Instructional
144 Material
personality of Bengal towards the end of the nineteenth century. In the Partition of Bengal and
Home Rule Movement
beginning, the proposal was also referred to as ‘beastly’ by Nawab Sir Khwaja
Salimullah Bahadur, the fourth Nawab of Dhaka and one of the leading
Muslim politicians during the British Raj. Initially, the Muslims opposed
the control of a new province under the rule of a chief commissioner as they NOTES
felt that it would severely affect their educational, social and other interests.
They also feared that the partition would threaten the unity of Bengal.
However, the elite and the educated Muslims criticized the ideas of
the extremist militant nationalism as they believed it to be against the spirit
of the religion of Islam. As a result, the Muslim press advised its educated
co-religionists to remain loyal and committed to the government. Largely,
the supporters of the Swadeshi Movement were unsuccessful in winning the
trust and support of the Muslim masses in east Bengal. The revolutionary
spirit for the partition did not continue for long among the Muslims as the
concept of the formation of a self-contained separate province changed their
views completely. They realized that as a result of the partition, the new
administration would give special attention to their problems.
As a result, the Muslims cordially greeted Sir Joseph Bampfylde
Fuller, the first Lieutenant Governor of the new province of Eastern Bengal
and Assam. The Moslem Chronicle also changed its outlook towards the
partition. The formation of the new province strengthened the unity of the
Muslims and motivated them to form an association which would give them
a platform to put forward their views and aspirations in terms of social and
political issues. To champion the Muslim interests, a political front called the
Mohammedan Provincial Union was established on 16 October 1905. This
association invited all other existing Muslim organizations and associations
to affiliate with it and Nawab Sir Khwaja Salimullah Bahadur was chosen
as its patron.
Despite this, a minor group of educated liberal Muslims continued
to extend their support to the anti-partition movement and the Swadeshi
Movement. Although less in number, they strongly supported the Indian
National Congress and opposed the partition. One of the prominent figures
of this broad-minded group was Khwaja Atiqullah, a philanthropist and a
man of liberal, progressive and secular ideas. In 1906, at the Calcutta session
of the Congress, he moved a resolution which condemned the partition of
Bengal. The important Muslim leaders who urged their community members
to participate in the anti-partition campaign were:
• Abdur Rasul: A nationalist leader and lawyer
• Khan Bahadur Muhammad Yusuf: A political leader and a member
of the Management Committee of the Central National Muhamedan
Association
Self-Instructional
Material 145
Partition of Bengal and • Sheikh Mujibur Rahman: A Bengali nationalist politician and the
Home Rule Movement
founder of Bangladesh
• A.H. Abdul Halim Ghaznavi: A politician, philanthropist and a
NOTES zamindar
• Syed Ismail Hossain Siraji: A Bengali writer, orator and peasant
leader
• Muhammad Gholam Hossain: A writer and a promoter of Hindu-
Muslim unity
• Maulvi Liaqat Hussain: A liberal Muslim who vehemently opposed
the ‘divide and rule’ policy of the British
• Syed Hafizur Rahman Chowdhury of Bogra
• Abul Kasem of Burdwan
However, liberal nationalist Muslims including A.H. Ghaznavi and
Khan Bahadur Muhammad Yusuf supported only the Swadeshi Movement
and not the Boycott Movement.
The partition created a rift between the Hindus and the Muslims. A
section of the Muslim community made an attempt to promote harmonious
relations between the two religions. Well-known Bengali statesmen, Abul
Kasem Fazlul Huq and Nibaran Chandra Das, promoted non-communal
ideas through their weekly and monthly journals, Balaka and Bharat Suhrd,
respectively. Due to this rift, only a minor section of Muslim intellectuals
became a member of the Indian National Congress and participated in the
anti-partition movement.
Majority of the Muslims were in favour of the partition. The
circumstances generated over the partition of Bengal further led to the
establishment of the All India Muslim League in 1906, which supported the
partition. The partition was also supported by traditional and reformist Muslim
groups—the Faraizi, Wahabi and Taiyuni. Moreover, the Bengali Muslim
press supported the partition, while monthly magazine, Islam Pracharak,
portrayed Swadeshi as a Hindu movement. The Muslim intelligentsia disliked
the Swadeshi Movement as it was tied to the anti-partition agitation and had
religious tone added to it.
To some extent, the Swadeshi Movement was considered responsible
for encouraging separatist forces within the Muslim society. The Muslims felt
unprotected because of the dominance of the Hindus in trade and commerce,
and this prompted them to protect their own interests. The pattern of the
land system in Bengal during the partition also influenced the mindset of
the Muslims significantly. The Hindu zamindars were not taking effective
measures to improve the conditions of several raiyats, who were mostly
Muslims. Furthermore, the agrarian disputes between the tenants and the
landlords further aggravated because of communal discord. It was asserted
Self-Instructional
146 Material
that the Hindu zamindars tried to impose Swadeshi ideas on their Muslim Partition of Bengal and
Home Rule Movement
tenants and tempted them to join the anti-partition movement.
As an attempt to emphasize their separate identity, an Islamic conference
was organized by the Muslims in 1906 at Keraniganj in Dhaka. Muslims
NOTES
masses of eastern Bengal and Assam were encouraged by their community
members to break all relations with Hindus. The anti-protest movement
adopted several measures, such as the song Bande Mataram as the song of
inspiration or using the cult of Shivaji as the national hero, which alienated
the Muslims further. As a result of the clashes between the Hindus and the
Muslims, the Comilla riot broke out in March 1907, which was followed by
Jamalpur riots in April 1907. These communal disturbances were not only
restricted to eastern Bengal and Assam but also spread in other places of the
country. These riots marked a turning point in the history of modern Bengal.
The weakening of the Hindu-Muslim relationship resulted in several
political changes in the policies of the government. It further affected the
relations of the Bengali Muslim leaders with their non-Bengali counterparts.
The communal relations in east Bengal were severely affected by these
political changes. The implementation of several constitutional reforms,
particularly the Morley-Minto Reforms in 1909 that introduced separate
representation for the Muslims, marked a turning point in further deteriorating
the Hindu-Muslim relations.
The officials of the new province passionately and wholeheartedly
conducted its development works. The leaders of the anti-partition movement
accused Sir Joseph Bampfylde Fuller for being extremely partial to the
Muslims. Due to some indifference with the government, Fuller resigned in
August 1906. However, his resignation was seen by the Muslims as a political
victory of the Hindus. They also felt that the government had surrendered to
the pressures of the anti-partition movement and this made them overlook
the loyalty of the Muslims to the government.
As a result, the bitterness between the two communities became more
critical in the new province. The Hindu landlords felt threatened by the acts
of terrorism by the Muslim agitators, as a result of which the landlord-tenant
relationship in the new province deteriorated and took a communal turn.
The Muslim leaders felt that the protest of the Hindus against the partition
of Bengal was basically a communal movement, which was a threat to the
Muslims as a separate community. Thus, they now aimed at uniting the
different sections of their community to create an opposition movement
against the Hindus. They decided to faithfully follow their leaders, Nawab
Bahadur Syed Nawab Ali Chowdhury (a noted philanthropist, zamindar,
social worker and politician) and Nawab Sir Khwaja Salimullah Bahadur,
and established organizations like the Mohammedan Provincial Union.
Self-Instructional
Material 147
Partition of Bengal and Even though the severity of the Hindus-Muslim relations had reached
Home Rule Movement
its peak, some educated upper class Hindus and Muslims wanted to put an
end to this communalism. On 15 March 1907, some significant members of
both the communities met the Viceroy Lord Minto and requested him to put
NOTES an end to this communal violence and promote religious harmony between
the two communities.
Meanwhile, on 30 December 1906, the All India Muslim League
was formed in Dhaka. In the first meeting at Dhaka, one of the resolutions
of the League stated: ‘That this meeting in view of the clear interest of the
Muhammadans of Eastern Bengal consider that Partition is sure to prove
beneficial to the Muhammadan community which constitute the vast majority
of the populations of the new province and that all such methods of agitation
such as boycotting should be strongly condemned and discouraged’.
The government further aggravated the communal resentment between
the Hindus and Muslims. On one hand, it decided to cancel the partition to
tone down the bitterness of the aggressive Bengali Hindus, while on the
other hand, it stated the Muslims had a major population in the new province
of eastern Bengal. It also said that the interests of the Muslims would be
protected and they would be having a special representation in the Legislative
Councils and the local bodies.
Reunion of Bengal
In 1910, Lord Hardinge succeeded Lord Minto as the Viceroy of India.
During his tenure, a Coronation Durbar was held in December 1911 to greet
the King of England, George V. King George V announced the annulment of
the partition of Bengal, which was decided to formally end on 1 April 1912.
Besides, the King also announced certain administrative changes in India,
which are as follows:
1. The Government of India shifted the capital from Calcutta to Delhi.
This attempt to shift the capital to the site of past Muslim glory was
made to pacify the Muslim community of Bengal who were afflicted
by the loss of provincial power and privilege in eastern Bengal.
2. The five main Bengali speaking divisions, including Burdwan (also
known as Bardhaman), Dhaka, The Presidency, Chittagong and
Rajshahi, were to be united under one Presidency, which would be
governed by a Governor-in-Council.
3. A province comprising of Chhota Nagpur, Orissa and Bihar was to be
administered by a Lieutenant-Governor-in-Council with a Legislative
Council.
4. Assam was to go back under the administration of a Chief Commissioner
again.
Self-Instructional
148 Material
Although the reunification of Bengal pacified the Bengali Hindus to a Partition of Bengal and
Home Rule Movement
great extent, they were severely affected by the shift of the capital to Delhi
as it demoted Calcutta from an imperial to a mere provincial status. The
shift of the capital to Delhi from Calcutta, which was the nerve centre of
political activity, weakened the influence of the Bengali Hindus significantly. NOTES
The government was enjoying the main advantage of the capital shift as it
had sensed that the agitated atmosphere of Bengal could have shaken their
establishment in India.
Lord Carmichael was appointed as the first Governor of Bengal after
the annulment of the partition of Bengal. Under his tenure, Bengal was turned
into a Governor’s province in 1912. The agitation of the partition of Bengal
had far-reaching effects on Indian history and nationalism. Its twin weapons
of Swadeshi and Boycott became a statement of belief for the Indian National
Congress and was effectively used in other parts of India as well in future
conflicts. They formed the basis of Mahatma Gandhi’s Non-Cooperation,
Satyagraha and Khadi movements.
However, the Muslims were severely affected by the annulment of the
partition as a result of the agitation against it. The support of the Congress
to the anti-partition movement was disliked by the politically conscious
Muslims, who now strongly felt that their interests were not safe in the
hands of the Congress. As a result, they became more anxious to emphasize
their separate communal identity. Therefore, they became dependent on the
Muslim League to protect their interests against the dominance of the Hindus
in India, which was still undivided.
The travails of Bengal played a vital role in initiating the Indian
nationalism. Besides, the agitation against the partition also was responsible
for Muslim nationalism, which encouraged them in separatist politics. Not
only the Bengali Muslims but also the Muslims of the whole of India were
severely disappointed by the annulment of the Partition of Bengal as they felt
that the agitation had become much more important to the government than
their loyalty. Subsequently, the Muslims felt dejected which forced them to
take an anti-British stance.
Self-Instructional
Material 149
Partition of Bengal and
Home Rule Movement 8.3 THE HOME RULE MOVEMENT AND SOME
PERSONALITIES
NOTES With the rise of revolutionary movements and extremism, the British
government followed a two-edged policy: (i) adopting the policies of
repression and dividing the Indians, specifically the Hindus and the Muslims;
and (ii) bringing about gradual reforms which resulted in passing of the Act
of 1909. The formation of the Muslim League in 1906 and the clause of the
communal electorate system in the Act of 1909 discredited the British in
the eyes of most of the Indians. Still a lull remained in Indian politics for
some time because the moderates grudgingly decided to cooperate with the
government for some more time. The outbreak of World War I provided a
new impetus to the national movement.
As we have already seen, when World War I started the Indian National
Congress supported the government in its war efforts with the presumption
that the British government will bring about some administrative reforms
for the benefit of the Indians after the war. However, the extremists viewed
it as a God-sent opportunity and took a decision to advance their own cause.
They thought that it was the fitting time to force Britain to agree to the Indian
demands for extracting political concessions during their time of difficulties.
The extremists were basically influenced by the emergence of the Irish
Home Rule Movement under the leadership of Issac Butt. B.G. Tilak returned
to active politics in 1914 after completing his term of imprisonment. He tried
to join hands with the Congress on the issue of demanding ‘Home Rule’ for
India. However, when he did not succeed in this, he founded the Home Rule
League on 28 April 1916 with its headquarters at Poona. Due to the British
indigestibility for the word ‘swaraj’, Tilak opted for the term ‘Home Rule’
in place of ‘swaraj’ as the main objective of the movement.
The main aim of the Home Rule League was to ‘attain Home-Rule or
self-government within the British Empire by all constitutional means and to
educate and organise public opinion in the country towards the attainment of
the same’. Annie Besant, an Irish lady, had arrived in India as a member of
the Theosophical Society. She later joined the Congress. Besant had set up a
Home Rule League in London in 1914 and ultimately founded a Home Rule
League on 15 September 1916. The latter had its headquarters at Adyar near
Madras. Both these leagues supported each other and hence, divided their
areas of activities among themselves. Tilak’s Home Rule League confined
its activities to Maharashtra, Karnataka, Madhya Pradesh and Berar, while
Besant’s League functioned in the rest of the country.
Tilak and Besant toured all over India and propagated the message
of the Home Rule among the masses. They used the means of newspapers,
mass meetings and distribution of leaflets to spread their message. Tilak used
Self-Instructional
150 Material
Young India to stir the popular sentiments. Besant, on her part, used New India Partition of Bengal and
Home Rule Movement
and Common Weal to educate the masses about the League’s objectives. The
movement attracted liberal leaders such as Motilal Nehru and Tej Bahadur
Sapru who became its members. Hence, the Home Rule Movement turned
a powerful phenomenon during the phase of World War I. The movement NOTES
strived for the grant of self-government to India within the British dominions.
However, it always remained within constitutional limits.
The government put strenuous efforts to suppress the movement
through force. Besant was forced to stop the publication of New India and was
sentenced to home imprisonment. When action was taken against Besant and
Tilak on their refusal to provide securities and personal bonds, the movement
acquired an all India character. The movement infused the spirit of patriotism,
fearlessness, self-respect and sacrifice among the people. Ultimately, the
government relented and in 1917 by Montague’s declaration was receptive to
the idea of self-government for India through a gradual process. Annie Besant
was elected as the Congress President in 1917 and the objective of ‘Home Rule’
was accepted by the Congress. It was the biggest success of this movement.
However, the movement got weakened after some time and the Home
Rule movement came to an abrupt end. Some of the reasons for this were:
the passing of the Government of India Act, 1919; factionalism in the
Congress on the issue of the Act; departure of Tilak to London for a legal
case; and Besant’s consent to the new scheme of reforms of 1919. Although
the Home Rule Movement could not achieve its objectives, it kept the fire
of nationalism burning among the Indians during the course of the war. It
was crucial because during this period the congress had failed to provide any
direction to the people.
On the issue of the significance of the Home Rule Movement, S.R.
Mehrotra states: ‘The Home Rule Leagues created a significant impact on the
national movement in India. For the first time an agitation had been aroused
on a nation-wide scale and a network of political committees covered much
of India.’
The objectives of Home Rule League were:
1. Work for national education, social and political reforms.
2. Tilak linked up the question of swaraj with the demand for the
formation of linguistic states and education in vernacular. He also
used Home Rule to put an end to caste feeling among the common
people and advocated abolition of untouchability.
3. Self-Government for India in British Empire.
4. Tilak (April) and Annie Besant & S. Subramaniam lyer
(September) established Home Rule Leagues in 1916.
5. Tilak’s League was to work in Maharashtra, Karnataka, Central
Provinces and Berar and Annie Besant’s in the rest of India. Self-Instructional
Material 151
Partition of Bengal and 6. Annie Besant set up the newspapers—New India, Commonweal
Home Rule Movement
and Young India (1916)
7. Tilak published—Mahratta & Kesari
NOTES 8. Jamnadas Dwarkadas, Shankarlal Banker, Indulal Yagnik, George
Arundale, B P Wadia and L. P. Ramaswamy lyer were in Besant’s
League.
9. Home Rule Movement declined after Besant accepted the
proposed Montford Reforms and Tilak went to Britain to fight
the libel suit against Valentine Chirol’s Indian Unrest.
Methods
• Create public opinion in favour of Home Rule through public meeting,
also organising discussions, reading rooms propaganda through public
meetings, newspapers, pamphlets, posters, etc.
• Emphasis shifted to the masses permanently organizational link
established between town and country prepared a generation of ardent
nationalists, influenced Moderate-Extremist reunion at Lucknow
(1916).
Results
(a) It discredited moderates of INC and created condition for readmission
of neo-nationalists in 1916
(b) The movement marks the beginning for attainment of Swaraj.
(c) Education Programme
(d) Montague declaration of 1917—Greatest political achievement
Unity at Lucknow
The nationalists very soon realized that disunity among them was harming
their cause and that they should put up a united front against the government.
The emerging nationalist feeling in the country and the urge for national
unity resulted in historical developments during the Lucknow session of
the Indian National Congress in 1916. Most importantly, the two factions of
the Congress were reunited. The old controversies were no longer relevant
because most of the leaders realized that the split in the Congress had borne
political inactivity. Tilak, after his release from jail in 1914, instantly felt the
change in the situation and strived to unify the two streams of Congressmen.
To pacify the moderate nationalists, he stated:
I may state once for all that we are trying in India, as the Irish Home-
rulers have been all along doing in Ireland, for a reform of the system of
administration and not for the overthrow of government; and I have no
hesitation in saying that the acts of violence which have been committed
Self-Instructional in the different parts of India are not only repugnant to me, but have, in
152 Material
my opinion, only unfortunately retarded to a great extent, the pace of our Partition of Bengal and
Home Rule Movement
political progress.
Further, the emerging tide of nationalism forced the old leaders to
welcome Lokamanya Tilak and other militant nationalists back into the
NOTES
Congress. The Lucknow Congress was the first united Congress since 1907.
It asked for further constitutional reforms as a step towards self-government.
At Lucknow, the Congress and the All India Muslim League buried their old
differences and forwarded united political demands before the government.
The War and the two Home Rule Leagues were generating a new
sentiment in the country which changed the character of the Congress.
Similarly, the Muslim League had also been undergoing gradual changes.
We have already observed earlier that the younger section of the educated
Muslims was taking to bolder form of nationalist politics. The War period
witnessed further developments in that direction. As a result, in 1914 the
government took punitive measures against the publication of Al Hilal of Abul
Kalam Azad and the Comrade of Maulana Mohamed Ali. The government
also interned the Ali Brothers (Mohamed Ali and Shaukat Ali), Hasrat Mohani
and Abul Kalam Azad. Even though partially, the League at least reflected the
political militancy of its younger members. It steadily began to outgrow the
limited political outlook of the Aligarh school of thought and shifted nearer
to the general Congress policies.
This growing unity in the objectives of the Congress and the League
culminated in the signing of the Congress–League Pact, popularly called
the Lucknow Pact. Lokamanya Tilak and Mohammad Ali Jinnah played an
important role in bringing the two together. They believed that India can win
self-government only through Hindu-Muslim unity. Tilak stated at the time:
It has been said, gentlemen, by some that we Hindus have yielded too
much to our Mohammedan brethren. I am sure I represent the sense of the
Hindu community all over India when I say that we could not have yielded
too much. I would not care if the rights of self-government are granted to
the Mohammedan community only.
I would not care if they are granted to the lower and the lowest classes
of the Hindu population. When we have to fight against a third party, it is a
very important thing that we stand on this platform united, united in race,
united in religion, as regard all different shades of political creed.
The two organizations passed similar resolutions at their sessions. They
also put forward a joint scheme of political reforms on the basis of separate
electorates and demanded that the British government should make a declaration
to the effect that it will confer self-government to India at the earliest.
In the field of Hindu-Muslim unity, the Lucknow Pact marked an
important step forward. Regrettably, it did not involve the Hindu and
Muslim masses and accepted the harmful principle of separate electorates.
Self-Instructional
Material 153
Partition of Bengal and It was meant to bring together the educated Hindus and Muslims as distinct
Home Rule Movement
political entities. But it lacked on the critical issue of secularizing their
political outlook, which would have made them understand that in politics
they possessed no distinct interests as Hindus or Muslims. Therefore, the
NOTES Lucknow Pact left the scope for the future resurgence of communalism in
Indian politics.
Nonetheless, the immediate effect of the developments at Lucknow was
wonderful. The unity between the moderate and militant nationalists as well
as between the Indian National Congress and the Muslim League created
immense political enthusiasm in the country. Even the British government
found it essential to appease the nationalists. Till then it had heavily depended
upon repression to control the nationalist agitation.
Earlier, scores of radical nationalists and revolutionaries had been
jailed or interned under the provisions of nefarious Defence of India Act and
other similar regulations. The government now realized the requirement to
appease nationalist opinion and on 20 August 1917 declared that its policy
in India was ‘the gradual development of self-governing institutions with a
view to the progressive realisation of responsible government of India as an
integral part of the British empire’.
In July 1918, the Montague-Chelmsford reforms were declared.
However, the Indian nationalism could not be appeased. Actually, the Indian
national movement was soon to enter its third and last phase, i.e., the phase
of mass struggle or the Gandhian Era.
8.5 SUMMARY
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House.
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Chandra, Bipin. 2009. History of Modern India. Hyderabad: Orient
Blackswan.
Self-Instructional
Material 157
Eminent Personalities in
Freedom Struggle
UNIT 9 EMINENT PERSONALITIES
IN FREEDOM STRUGGLE
NOTES
Structure
9.0 Introduction
9.1 Objectives
9.2 Tilak, Gokhale, Lala Lajpat Rai and V. O. Chidambaram
9.3 Impact of First World War
9.4 Answers to Check Your Progress Questions
9.5 Summary
9.6 Key Words
9.7 Self Assessment Questions and Exercises
9.8 Further Readings
9.0 INTRODUCTION
In the previous unit, you learnt about the partition of Bengal in 1905, as
well as the Home Rule Movement. In this unit, we will discuss some of the
famous personalities of the early phase of the Indian Freedom movement,
that is, Bal Gangadhar Tilak, Lala Lajpat Rai, Gopal Krishna Gokhale and
V. O. Chidambaram Pillai. The unit will also discuss the impact of the First
World War on India.
9.1 OBJECTIVES
Self-Instructional
Material 159
Eminent Personalities in The young Indian revolutionary nationalist leaders from the Hindustan
Freedom Struggle
Socialist Republican Association such as Bhagat Singh and Chandrashekhar
Azad, sought revenge against the English police officer responsible for hitting
Rai with lathis during the protest.
NOTES
Gopal Krishna Gokhale
One of the most important leaders of the early years of the freedom struggle,
Gopal Krishna Gokhale was one of the main leaders of the moderate faction
of the Indian National Congress. Along with his role in securing greater rights
for Indians, he was also an important leader attempted to social reforms.
Being one of the first generation of Indians to receive college education,
Gokhale was respected widely in the Indian intellectual community. He
was founder of the Servants of India Society which was dedicated to inspire
nationalistic feelings among his fellow countrymen. During his political
career, Gokhale was in favour of reforms by working and co-operating with
existing government institutions and machinery.
Vallinayagam Olaganathan Chidambaram Pillai
Popularly known as the Tamil Helmsman, VO Chidambaram Pillai was a
prominent freedom fighter from the state of Tamil Nadu. An exceptional
organizer and someone who believed in employing all resources to rouse
the people towards the freedom struggle, Pillai was one of the most famous
students of Bal Gangadhar Tilak. He played the critical role in organizing
the Swadeshi movement in southern India.
Pillai had entered politics during the ferment taking place in India
after the 1905 Partition of Bengal. He was immediately drawn to the ideas of
Tilak and Rai and enthusiastically took part in the Swadeshi movement. By
1906, Pillai won the support of merchants and industrialists in Turicorin and
Tirunelveli for the idea of establishing a Swadeshi merchant shipping outfit
by the name of the Swadeshi Steam Navigation Company (SSNCo). In the
process, he converted Tirunelveli district into a hotbed of intense nationalist
politics—to the shock and anger of the British colonialists. The formal birth
of the Swadeshi Steam Navigation Company (SSNCo), on October 16, 1906,
was largely the personal achievement of VOC. Meanwhile, VOC brought
together leading commercial figures from Tirunelveli, Madurai and other
centres in Tamil Nadu in order to place the Swadeshi shipping company on a
firmer footing. Even prior to Gandhiji’s Champaran Satyagraha, VOC took up
the cause of the working class in Tamil Nadu, and thus he can be considered
to be a forerunner to Mahatama Gandhi in this respect.
Self-Instructional
160 Material
Eminent Personalities in
Check Your Progress Freedom Struggle
The First World War started in June 1914. France, Great Britain, Russia and
Japan were on one side and Germany, Austria, Hungary and Turkey comprised
the opposing side. Later, Italy also joined the former group. In the third world
countries, this war awakened the spirit of nationalism among the masses.
When the war started, the Congress was dominated by the moderate
faction led by Gokhale. The Congress took a decision to help the British
considering it a duty. It decided to support the British thinking that after
getting help from India, the British would feel grateful and would allow
self-government in India. However, the Indian leaders at that time could not
realize that the war between these groups was basically to safeguard their
colonies. Nonetheless, the Congress did not support the British when Bal
Gangadhar Tilak came back from jail. Tilak stated that pleading before the
British for their rights did not serve any purpose. He maintained that freedom
was the birth right of the Indians. Hence, he laid the foundation of the anti-
government movement that was later led and guided by Gandhi.
Majority of the Indian leaders ultimately felt that the British government
would not allow self-government in India if they were not pressurized for
the same. Hence, they realized the requirement to start a mass movement.
There were several other reasons behind the people’s decision to start a mass
movement. During the war period, heavy taxes were imposed on the people
and the prices of essential goods also increased. Consequently, this period
witnessed intense agitations against the policies of the British government.
When the First World War broke out in the year 1914, India was also
going through a state of growing political turbulence. The Indian National
Congress was no longer a group that met and discussed issues in political
conferences. Slowly, it was demanding self-governance from the British. The
Germans, before the breakout of the War, had made efforts to stir up an anti-
British sentiment in India. The Germans believed that if the British faced heat
in India, their chances of victory in the War would be significantly reduced.
William Archer wrote of the moment: ‘The moment Britain gets into trouble
elsewhere, India, in her present temper, would burst into a blaze of rebellion.’
Self-Instructional
Material 161
Eminent Personalities in These fears were, however, unfounded. When the War was declared on
Freedom Struggle
August 4, 1914, India rallied behind the cause of the British and supported it in
the War. The influential section of the country believed that the independence
of India was in the hands of the British and thus, the country should support
NOTES the colonizers in whatever capacity it could. Financial and military help was
offered to the British from all over the country. Wealthy states offered huge
sums of money. States outside of the British control too pitched in to help
– Nepal, for instance, sent 100,000 of its Gurkha soldiers while the Dalai
Lama in Tibet provided 1000 of his troops in support of the British. Despite
its initial fears of unrest, at the time of the War the British Army was able
to handle large groups of troops and take out most of its military equipment
from India as people supported the British and brought down the fear of
unrest within the country. The Indian troops, in fact, were battle-ready much
before the War and before the troops of other dominions.
By the winter of 1914, Indian troops were placed in the Western
Front and participated in the first Battle of Ypres. The troops suffered many
casualties by the end of 1915. During this time, it was decided to withdraw
the Indian Corps from the frontline duty due to large-scale casualties from
battles and sickness.
While one and a half million Indian volunteered to fight for the British,
nearly 800,000 Indian troops participated in all battles held in the War. Indian
troops bravely fought across many countries, including Gallipoli and North
and East Africa. By the end of the War, a total of 47,746 Indian troops were
registered as killed or missing and 65,000 were wounded. For its valour, the
Indian Corps was given 13,000 medals for gallantry, including 12 Victoria
Crosses. The Corps’ first Victoria Cross was won by Khudadad Khan.
As with all wars, the cost of this war too took a toll on the Indian
economy and it was pushed to the brink of bankruptcy. Yet, the British
establishment was surprised with the support it received from the Indians.
The Times noted at the time: ‘The Indian empire has overwhelmed the British
nation by the completeness and unanimity of its enthusiastic aid.’
As mentioned above, the Indians had provided support believing that it
would be rewarded by the British in return with a significant move towards
independence or at the least self-governance. It was soon apparent that the
British held no such intentions. With this, the mood among the Indian political
class and the masses soon turned antagonistic and even revolutionary towards
the British. At the time when the War was in its final stages, Mahatma Gandhi
retorted: ‘Seek ye first the recruiting office, and everything will be added
unto you’. Thus, the British government’s post-war lack of support to the
cause of the Indian independence alienated leaders like Gandhi and gave a
great stimulus to the national movement. After the First World War ended,
the British introduced some reforms to pacify sentiments in India based on
Self-Instructional
162 Material
the Montagu–Chelmsford Reforms. As a result, the Government of India Act Eminent Personalities in
Freedom Struggle
was finally introduced in the year 1919.
Its main features were:
• It introduced a national parliament for India having two houses. NOTES
• Around 5 million of the wealthiest upper class Indians were provided
the right to vote (a very small percentage of the total population).
• In the provincial governments, the Indian national were entitled to
become the ministers of education, health and public works.
• The act had the provisions for a commission to be held in 1929, to
find out if India was ready for more concessions/reforms.
Nonetheless, the British still controlled all the central government
portfolios and even within the provincial governments they controlled the
key positions of tax and law and order. Many Indians felt that they had been
severely let down by the British government for their support provided during
World War I. But despite such feelings of being let down, India still played
a major part in World War II as well.
The Government of India Act, 1919, was passed to increase the
participation of Indians in the Government of India. The Act included the
reforms which were suggested in the report of the Secretary of State for India,
Edwin Montagu, and the Viceroy, Lord Chelmsford.
Some of the features of the Act are as follows:
(i) Preamble: The preamble of the Government of India Act includes
the principles and policies which laid the foundation of this
Act. The Preamble suggested a decentralized unitary form of
government.
The policy of the British Parliament was:
(a) To provide for the increasing association of Indians in every
branch of Indian administration
(b) To develop self-governing institutions with a view to the
progressive realization of responsible government in British
India as an integral part of the empire
(c) The time and manner of gradual advance towards this goal
to be decided by the British Parliament
(ii) Distribution of functions of government: The functions
of the government were divided into two categories: central
functions and provincial functions. The provincial subjects were
subdivided into ‘transferred’ and ‘reserved’. It was decided that
the ministers who were accountable to the legislature would assist
the Governors in the transferred subjects. On the other hand, the
Councillors who were not accountable to the legislature, were
Self-Instructional
Material 163
Eminent Personalities in to advise the Governors in the reserved subjects. Thus, the dual
Freedom Struggle
set of governments were introduced in the provinces namely
accountable and non-accountable.
(iii) Powers of Governor-General: The Central Legislature was given
NOTES
the authority to consider, pass or reject legislation on any subject
which was mentioned in the Central List. However, the authority
of the final decision on any Bill passed by the Legislature was in
the hands of the Governor-General. He had the authority to stop
consideration of any Bill or a part of a Bill, if he believed that it
might be dangerous for the peace of the country. He also had the
power not to allow debate or adjournment motion on some issues,
in the legislature.
The Governor-General also had the authority to hold back his
agreement on any Bill. No Bill could become an Act without his
agreement. Moreover, he also had a power to enact a law which
he believed was important for the peace and safety of the country,
even if the Legislature did not pass it.
(iv) Division of members: In this Act, the members were divided
into three categories: elected, nominated officials and nominated
non-officials and they had 70 per cent, 10 per cent and 20 per cent
members respectively.
(v) The voting qualifications: According to this Act, the voting
qualification varied in different provinces. Moreover, within the
same province, the voting qualifications were different based on
whether the area was rural or urban. There were two categories
of constituencies namely general and special. The general
constituency included Hindus, Muslims, Christians, Anglo-
Indians and Sikhs, etc. Special constituencies represented land
holders, universities, chambers of commerce etc.
(vi) Two types of legislature: According to this Act, legislature was
categorized into two types namely the Council of States and
the Central Legislative Assembly. The Council of States had 60
members, out of which 33 were elected and 27 were nominated.
The Central Legislature Assembly had 145 members, out of which
104 were elected and 41 were nominated.
(vii) Provincial legislatures and its powers: The number of seats
of provincial legislatures varied from province to province. The
provincial legislative councils had the authority to legislate on the
topics which were listed under provincial subjects. The Governor
had the authority not to consider a Bill. If he considered the Bill
dangerous for the peace and safety of the province, he had the
authority to send the Bill back to the House for reconsideration.
Self-Instructional
164 Material
In some cases, he could keep the Bill to send to the Governor- Eminent Personalities in
Freedom Struggle
General for his opinion. The Governor-General was empowered
to reserve the Bill to take the opinion of the Crown.
(viii) Executive Council of the Governor-General: This Council
NOTES
was not accountable to the Central Legislature rather it was
accountable to the Secretary of State. There was no limit on the
membership of the Executive Council of the Governor-General.
Three members out of the six members of the Executive Council
of the Governor-General were to be Indians. A pleader who
pleaded in the Indian High Court was also eligible to become a
law member.
(ix) Powers of the Secretary of State for India: Earlier the Secretary
of the State for India had a lot of authority over the central and
provincial administration. However, with the enactment of this,
his powers were reduced.
Importance of the Act
Many prominent leaders of the time observed that the Act of 1919 was
important as it was more comprehensive than any other Act enacted before.
This Act introduced direct election and increased the franchise. After the
enactment of this Act, Indian ministers for the first time, could handle
some of the departments of provincial administration not merely as official
nominees but as the leaders of the elected majorities. These ministers were
responsible to the people. It gave an opportunity to the people to take first-
hand experience in politics.
However, even though the Act had some commendable features, it was
defective in many ways. Dr. A K. Heith said ‘the executive remained wholly
free from direct authority of the legislature’.
The subjects which the Indian leaders were given to handle were not
important from the point of view of politics. The system that came into being
after this Act did not improve the efficiency of administration.
The ministers felt that they did not have enough authority to carry out
their responsibility. Sir K. V. Reddy said, ‘I was minister for Development
without the Forest. I was the minister for Agriculture minus irrigation.’ The
Moderates accepted the Act as they took this Act as a first step towards self-
government. The Nationalist party did not accept the Act as they considered
inadequate, disappointing and unsatisfactory.
With the outbreak of World War I, there was great enthusiasm in the
country. The people of India were willing to serve the government in every
possible way. After Marne, there was an increasing demand for Indian troops
outside India. When Turkey joined the Central Powers in October 1914, Indian
troops garrisoned the Suez Canal and repulsed a Turkish attack. Indian troops
Self-Instructional
Material 165
Eminent Personalities in fought through the long campaigns of Macedonia and German East Africa.
Freedom Struggle
They played an important part in the Iraq campaign leading to the capture
of Baghdad in 1917. In this way, they helped to found the present State of
Iraq. They were in the Allied army which took Jerusalem in 1917. All this
NOTES involved a great effort in India itself. Eight lakhs of men were recruited for
the fighting forces, together with four lakhs of non-combatants. This resulted
in great expansion in the military machine, a great mixture of classes and a
stronger feeling of self-confidence all around. Indian self-confidence grew
when the magnitude of their effort and the extent to which it depended upon
Indians themselves, were realized.
In the administrative sphere, the British government made a mistake
in allowing the British civilian officers to serve the forces during the war.
Many of them never returned and those who returned found themselves in
a strange new mental world to which it was difficult to adapt themselves.
When times grew difficult towards the end of the war, the Government had
only an ageing and tired cadre of officers to rely upon.
In the economic sphere, the first effect of the war was one of stimulus.
The industrial development of modern India owes a good deal to the demands
of World War I. However, increasing demands and expenditure led to rise
in prices and ultimately enthusiasm was turned into discontent. Englishmen
could be expected to put up with inconveniences because they felt that they
were fighting for their very existence and their victory was likely to add to
their glory. The same could not be said about the Indians for whom the war
was merely an external affliction. No doubt, they became not only exhausted
and war-weary but also sour, discontented and resentful.
The attitude of India towards Europeans and its people was altered
radically and permanently. The Indians gave up the feeling that the Europeans
were superior to them morally and technically. They were regarded merely
as more powerful. The first war casualty in India was the image of Western
superiority.
The Russian Revolution of 1917 also had a profound influence on the
mind of the Indians. They felt that if the people of Russia could overthrow an
imperialist regime, the same could be done by the Indians in their own country.
The Fourteen points of President Wilson had great influence on the Indians.
They also demanded the rights of national freedom and self-determination
of people. No wonder, the Indians demanded self-government in the name
of the fundamental principles accepted by the Allied Powers.
As regards the effect of war on Muslims, they were very unhappy. They
did not approve of the dismemberment of Turkey, which was regarded as
the sword of Islam. They also did not like the treatment given to the Arabs
who were considered to be rebels against the Turkish Khalifa. Their princes
were regarded as stooges of the infidel.
Self-Instructional
166 Material
When the war started, the Congress was still a middle-class body of Eminent Personalities in
Freedom Struggle
westernized professionals with some commercial and industrial backing.
It was firmly under the control of Gokhale and the Moderates. However,
all this was changed during the war. Tilak came back from jail and became
the all-important leader of all-India. Tilak was opposed to the old policy of NOTES
making prayers to the British Government. His contention was that every
Indian had the birth right to be free. He laid the foundations for the great
anti-government movement led by Gandhiji in the next few years.
9.5 SUMMARY
NOTES
9.7 SELF ASSESSMENT QUESTIONS AND
EXERCISES
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House.
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Chandra, Bipin. 2009. History of Modern India. Hyderabad: Orient
Blackswan.
Dube-Bannerjee, Ishita. 2015. A History of Modern India. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press.
Tarique, Mohammad. 2007. Modern Indian History. New Delhi: Tata
McGraw-Hill Education.
Self-Instructional
Material 169
The Second Phase of the
Freedom Struggle BLOCK – IV
THE SECOND PHASE OF INDIAN NATIONAL
MOVEMENT (1919 – 1947)
NOTES
10.0 INTRODUCTION
Self-Instructional
170 Material
The Second Phase of the
10.1 OBJECTIVES Freedom Struggle
Great turbulence existed in India during the last year of First World War.
The Rowlatt Act, the Jallianwala Bagh massacre, the Martial Law clamped
in the Punjab, breakdown of the Montague-Chelmsford Reforms which were
pronounced towards the end of 1918 and the dismemberment of Turkey by
the British following the Treaty of Severs in May 1920, created extensive
antipathy among all the sections of the people of India. Gandhi surrendered
his Kaisra-e-Hind Gold medal. On the suggestions of Mahatma Gandhi a
programme of non-cooperation was collectively accepted by the All Party
Conference held at Allahabad on 9 June 1920. As per the resolution of this
Conference, a decree supporting the programme of non-cooperation was
passed in the special session the Congress at Kolkata in September under the
Presidentiship of Lala Lajpat Rai. A large number of Muslims also attended
this session. Gandhi moved the resolution. Ali brothers and Pandit Motilal
Nehru supported it. C. R. Das, Annie Besant and Pandit Madan Mohan
Self-Instructional
Material 173
The Second Phase of the Malviya opposed it. The same was adopted in the plenary session at Nagpur
Freedom Struggle
in December of the same year.
The word ‘non-cooperation’ was innovative, but the inspiration came
from two sources. David Thoreau had protested against the arrangement of
NOTES
slavery in America and had repudiated to pay his taxes. His approach was
ethical. The Irish Sinn Fein Movement has also practiced non- cooperation
from the law courts.
Before 1920 the aim of the Congress was to accomplish self-governance
by constitutional and lawful means. The new aim of the Congress was
attainment of Swaraj by justifiable and nonviolent means. A four anna
membership was commenced so that more and more deprived people could
join the Congress. A chain of command was created i.e. village level, taluka
level and district level committees were created so that Congress reaches
to the grassroots. The Provincial Congress Committees was reorganized on
linguistic basis. The perception was to bring it close to the masses by using
the dialect languages. The numbers of delegates were to be fixed in proportion
to the population.
It was a nationwide widespread mass movement. The year 1921-22
observed an unprecedented movement in the nation’s history, when there was
a widespread turmoil among students. Non-alignment movement spread all
over India: A nationwide expedition was taken up by Mahatma Gandhi and
Ali Brothers of Khilafat movement Vallabhai Patel, C R Das. M.R Jayakar, T.
Prakasam, Saifuddin Kitchlew (Punjab), Moti Lal Nehru, C. Rajagopalachari,
and Asaf Ali left their legal profession and jumped in the full-fledged political
affairs of Congress. Many of the students had left government schools and
colleges and joined the movement.
Maulana Mehrnud Hasan laid the foundation stone of Jamia Millia
lslamia at Aligarh in the year 1920 on 29 October during the meeting of
the Foundation Committee of Jamia Millia lslamia. Simultaneously, Bihar
Vidyapeeth, Gujarat Vidyapeeth, Bengal Vidyapeeth and National College
of Lahore also came into existence. In some provinces such as Bengal and
Punjab, there was a complete boycott of education by the foreign rule. The
shops which sold foreign clothes were picketed. Charka and Khadi became
the icon of national movement. In Bengal, the anti-indigo cultivation by the
peasants was led by Someshwar Prasad Chaudhary. Whereas, the peasants of
Midnapur (Bengal) led by Birendranath Sasmal geared up for a very effectual
no-tax movement. People of different parts of the country blissfully joined
the no-tax to Government movement. It was victorious in the Andhra region.
The Tana-Bhagat cult of Chhota Nagpur tribal’s (Bihar) boycotted the
liquor. Akali Movement in Punjab also got linked up with the non-cooperation
movement. The Sikhs formed Shiromani Gurudwara Prabandhak Committee
(SGPC) on 13 December 1920 to secure Sikh Gurdwaras from corrupt priests
Self-Instructional
174 Material
and as a result Akali Dal was formed. The well-known founders were Kartar The Second Phase of the
Freedom Struggle
Singh Jabbar, Master Tara Singh and Baba Kharak Singh.
The non-cooperation movement was frail in the Bombay Presidency,
where, the people were grieving on the death of Bal Gangadhar Tilak. In
NOTES
Andhra Pradesh, Alluri Sitaram Raju organized the tribals and linked with
the non-cooperation movement. In the Vijaywada session on March 1921 the
Congress members were directed to accumulate funds, register more and more
members into the party and to give out the Charkhas. Khilafat Conference was
called in Karachi on 21 July 1921. In this conference, Maulana Mohammad
Ali commenced a resolution that Muslims will not serve in the British Indian
army. As a result, Ali brothers were under arrest for treason.
During this time the parallel government came into the picture in the
form of Volunteer Corps. The Government of India declared them as an
illegal organization under the Criminal Law Amendment Act, as a result
large number of volunteers, students and nationalist leaders were arrested.
Looking into the political situation of the country Gandhi wrote a letter
to Viceroy Lord Reading to lift a ban on the civil liberties and release the
political prisoners but to no avail.
The people were advised to:
• Surrender their titles and honorary offices and resignation from the
designated posts in the local bodies.
• Denial to attend Government duties, darbars and other official and
semi-official functions held by governmental officials or in their
honour.
• Boycott of foreign goods
• Withdrawal of children from schools and colleges and the
establishment of national schools and colleges in various provinces.
• Boycott of the elections to be held for councils as per the reforms
of 1919.
Prince of Wales visited India on November 1921; he was welcomed with
hartals and political meetings marred by panorama of mob violence and police
atrocities in Bombay. Congress leaders like C. R. Das and Motilal Nehru was
arrested. Lawyers left their job, students boycotted the colleges, liquor and
foreign shops were picketed. Mahatma Gandhi gave the slogan of ‘Swaraj
in one year’. Non-cooperators were mercilessly beaten and their meetings
were dispersed with force. Around twenty five thousand people were put
behind the bars. Mahatma Gandhi gave a seven days of ultimatum to the then
Governor General that if the political prisoners are not released then he will
start the Civil Disobedience Movement. However a fatal incident of Chauri
Chaura took place. In this incident the mob of three thousand people killed
22 policemen and burnt down the police station at Chauri Chaura, a place
Self-Instructional
Material 175
The Second Phase of the near Gorakhpur in Uttar Pradesh. Gandhi was disheartened and as a result
Freedom Struggle
he called off the non-cooperation movement. He was bitterly been criticized
by Lala Lajpat Rai, Subash Chandra Bose, Motilal Nehru and C. R. Das.
Gandhiji was arrested and put behind the bars and was awarded a sentence
NOTES of six years of imprisonment. Later he was released on health grounds.
1. The Defence of India Act of 1858 was also known as Act for the Good
Government of India.
2. After the Jalianwala Bagh massacre the proclamation of the Martial
law was pertinent in Amritsar, Gujaranwala, Sheikhpura and Kasur.
Various atrocities were committed by the British government like
flogging in the public, cutting down of water and electricity supply,
asking the Indians to crawl on their belly to the ground, etc.
3. The Prince of Wales visited India on November 1921.
4. Maulana Mehrnud Hasan laid the foundation stone of Jamia Millia
lslamia at Aligarh.
10.5 SUMMARY
• In the year 1917, a sedition committee was appointed with British Judge
Sir Sidney Rowlatt, as its President known as Rowlatt Committee.
• The act was condemned with a popular cry ‘no vakil, no dalil, no
appeal’.
• The protest in Amritsar was regarding their demand to liberate the two
renowned leaders of the national movement, Dr. Satya Pal and Dr.
Saifuddin Kitchlew who had been earlier arrested by the government
and moved to an underground place.
• Jallianwalla Massacre was the result of the revolt against the Rowlatt
Act.
• After the Jallianwala Bagh massacre the proclamation of the Martial
law was pertinent in Amritsar, Gujaranwala, Sheikhpura and Kasur.
Self-Instructional
176 Material
• Great turbulence existed in India during the last year of First World The Second Phase of the
Freedom Struggle
War. The Rowlatt Act, the Jallianwala Bagh massacre, the Martial
Law clamped in the Punjab, breakdown of the Montague-Chelmsford
Reforms which were pronounced towards the end of 1918 and the
dismemberment of Turkey by the British following the Treaty of Severs NOTES
in May 1920, created extensive antipathy among all the sections of the
people of India.
• On the suggestions of Mahatma Gandhi a programme of non-
cooperation was collectively accepted by the All Party Conference
held at Allahabad on 9 June 1920.
• Before 1920 the aim of the Congress was to accomplish self-governance
by constitutional and lawful means. The new aim of the Congress was
attainment of Swaraj by justifiable and nonviolent means.
• It was a nationwide widespread mass movement. The year 1921-22
observed an unprecedented movement in the nation’s history, when
there was a widespread turmoil among students.
• A fatal incident of Chauri Chaura took place. In this incident the
mob of three thousand people killed 22 policemen and burnt down
the police station at Chauri Chaura, a place near Gorakhpur in Uttar
Pradesh. Gandhi was disheartened and as a result he called off the
non-cooperation movement.
Self-Instructional
Material 177
The Second Phase of the Long Answer Questions
Freedom Struggle
1. Describe the non-cooperation movement in detail.
2. The people of Punjab received the grave blow of the movement against
NOTES the Rowlatt Act. Discuss.
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House.
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Chandra, Bipin. 2009. History of Modern India. Hyderabad: Orient
Blackswan.
Self-Instructional
178 Material
The Civil Disobedience
MOVEMENT
NOTES
Structure
11.0 Introduction
11.1 Objectives
11.2 The Swarajists
11.3 The Civil Disobedience Movement
11.4 The Second World War
11.5 Answers to Check Your Progress Questions
11.6 Summary
11.7 Key Words
11.8 Self Assessment Questions and Exercises
11.9 Further Readings
11.0 INTRODUCTION
As you have learnt, during the First World War, Indians supported and
cooperated with the British and their Allies against the Central powers, and
a large number of Indians lost their lives. They had hoped that in return, the
British would agree to their demand for granting a Dominion status to India
after the war.
After the end of the War, in response to the demand for Swaraj
and Dominion status, the British introduced another set of reforms – the
Government of India Act of 1919, also known as the Montague-Chelmsford
Reforms. The reforms did little to meet the aspirations of Indians, who felt
short-changed after fighting alongside the British in the War. They were not
ready to settle for anything less than self-rule, or Swaraj. People’s anger,
disgust and discontent with the British spilled over in the form of violence
and demonstrations all over the country. To suppress the volatile situation,
the British passed the Rowlatt Act in 1919, giving the government power to
arrest and detain people in jail without trial. The situation culminated in the
Jallianwala Bagh tragedy of 13 April 1919, in which General Dyer ordered
indiscriminate firing on unarmed protestors in an enclosed ground near the
Golden Temple, Amritsar. The victims had gathered to protest peacefully
against the British government’s excesses against Indians. In one of the most
heinous acts by the British in India, hundreds were killed, including men,
women and children. In response, under the leadership of Gandhi, the Indian
National Congress launched mass movements in all areas of the country. We
have already studied about the non-cooperation movement in the previous
unit. In this unit, we will study the civil disobedience movement.
Self-Instructional
Material 179
The Civil Disobedience
Movement 11.1 OBJECTIVES
The first major Gandhian movement all over India was the Non-Cooperation
Movement from 1920 to 1922. The movement was withdrawn in 1922
by Gandhi in view of the rise of violence among its followers. After the
termination of the movement his followers were agitated over the future
course of action. Leaders like C.R. Das and Motilal Nehru thought that,
as there was no immediate chance of resuming the struggle, an alternative
strategy was called for. That strategy was Council entry. This would require
Congressmen to contest election and appeal to the voters, that is, the common
Indians. At the same time they would not accept ministerial offices that
were created through the scheme of diarchy which had been rejected by the
Congress. This group called themselves the Swarajists Congress Party. They
aimed at thwarting the government plan for diarchy.
Until 1923, the Councils were dominated by the Liberals who had
walked out of the Congress at the beginning of the Non-Cooperation
Movement. When the Swarajists fought elections, those Liberals were
defeated all over the country. The Government of India Act, 1919, therefore,
failed to work. This hastened the appointment of the Simon Commission in
1928 for working out a more acceptable scheme of reforms for India.
1. C.R. Das and Motilal Nehru were two distinguished Swarajist leaders.
2. The Swarajists defeated the Liberal in the election.
3. One term of the Gandhi-Irwin pact was that all people arrested for
non-violent protest were to be released immediately.
4. The leader of the Khudai Khidmatgars’ Movement was Abdul Ghaffar
Khan.
5. Subhash Chandra Bose established the Forward Bloc.
11.6 SUMMARY
• The first major Gandhian movement all over India was the Non-
Cooperation Movement from 1920 to 1922. The movement was
withdrawn in 1922 by Gandhi in view of the rise of violence among
its followers.
• After the termination of the movement his followers were agitated
over the future course of action. Leaders like C.R. Das and Motilal
Nehru thought that, as there was no immediate chance of resuming
the struggle, an alternative strategy was called for. That strategy was
Council entry.
• Until 1923, the Councils were dominated by the Liberals who had
walked out of the Congress at the beginning of the Non-Cooperation
Movement. When the Swarajists fought elections, those Liberals were
defeated all over the country.
Self-Instructional
Material 185
The Civil Disobedience • On 12 March, 1930, Gandhi started a march from Sabarmati ashram
Movement
to the sea at Dandi accompanied by 72 followers. People cheered
the marchers and joined them along the way. As Gandhi walked past
them, villagers spun yarn on charkhas as a mark of their solidarity to
NOTES the movement.
• The colonial government was taken by surprise with the reaction of
the masses as it had not anticipated such widespread support to the
movement. Insecure, it decided to arrest Gandhi in May 1930 but the
decision only added much fuel to the fire that the movement had stirred.
• The most important feature of the Civil Disobedience Movement was
the support it received from the youth of the country, especially students
and women.
• In 1939, the Viceroy, Lord Linlithgow, made an announcement that
India was at war. This was done without consulting the Indian assembly.
• Nehru was fully supported by the Congress and the announcement that
India was at war with Germany was rejected. As a mark of protest,
resignations were given by all Congress state governments.
• At the time of the Second World War, Subhash Chandra Bose opposed
the British. He was a former member of the Congress who was
also against Gandhi’s strategy of non-violence. He established the
‘Forward Bloc’, which believed in the practice of militancy to achieve
independence.
• The existence of the Congress almost ended at the time of the war
because it rejected British proposals in the form of Cripps’ Mission.
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House.
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Chandra, Bipin. 2009. History of Modern India. Hyderabad: Orient
Blackswan.
Self-Instructional
Material 187
Partition and Independence
12.0 INTRODUCTION
British India sent over two million volunteer soldiers during World War II
(1939-1945), since Great Britain was part of the Allied Nations. Additionally,
several princely states provided large donations to support the Allied
campaign against the Axis power. Indians fought in all corners of the globe;
in Germany and Italy, in the deserts against Rommel and in the Asian region
defending India against the Japanese, and liberating British colonies such as
Singapore and Hong Kong when the Japanese surrendered in August 1945.
While the Muslim League supported the British war efforts, there was a
growing demand from the Congress seeking independence that too before it
agreed to help Britain. The Crown refused, and when the Congress announced
the Quit India Movement in August 1942, the party leaders were imprisoned.
Japan set up an army of Indian POWs known as the Indian National Army
with help of Indian revolutionaries.
Though India got Independence on 15 August 1947, the country was
partitioned and a new country came into existence, Pakistan. The basic
reason for the Partition was entirely political. We have studies the reasons
of rise of communalism in the previous unit, but it is generally considered
that the Revolt of 1857 marked a Hindu-Muslim divide. Gradually, both the
communities became acutely aware of their distinct religious identities, and
its end result was the Partition.
In this unit, you will learn how the nationalist fervour was taking a
distinct turn and the common people along with the Congress Party wanted
the British to quit India. And finally after achieving Independence, India was
divided and Pakistan was formed.
Self-Instructional
188 Material
Partition and Independence
12.1 OBJECTIVES
After the fall of Cripps’ Mission, the Indian National Congress became
stringent in its condition and passed a resolution in July 1942 demanding
complete independence from British government; failing which the resolution
proposed a massive civil disobedience against the government.
However, Chakravarti Rajagopalachari, a prominent Congress leader,
along with several local and regional level leaders, organized the Quit India
Movement. Jawaharlal Nehru and Maulana Azad reluctantly joined Gandhi’s
decision to back the proposal. On the other hand several outstanding leaders
like Sardar Vallabhbhai Patel, Dr. Rajendra Prasad and Dr Anugrah Narayan
Sinha along with socialists like Asoka Mehta and Jayaprakash Narayan openly
supported the civil disobedience movement.
Allama Mashriqi (head of Khaksar Tehrik) was also invited to join
the Quit India Movement, but he was critical about the outcome of the
movement and creation of Pakistan; and therefore did not agree with the
resolution. On 28 July, 1942 Mashriqi wrote to Maulana Abul Kalam Azad,
Khan Abdul Ghaffar Khan, Mahatma Gandhi, Rajagopalachari, Jawaharlal
Nehru, Rajendra Prasad, Dr. Pattabhi Sitaramiyya and Sambamurty (former
Speaker of the Madras Assembly) stating his reasons to not join the Quit
India Movement.
In a telegram, which was later published in press, Mashriqi said, “My
honest opinion is that Civil Disobedience Movement is a little pre-mature.
The Congress should first concede open-heartedly and with handshake to
Muslim League the theoretical Pakistan, and thereafter all parties unitedly
make demand of Quit India. If the British refuse, start total disobedience...”
Despite several leaders opposing the resolution, on 8 August 1942,
Quit India resolution was passed at the Bombay session of All India Congress
Committee (AICC). At the session held at Gowalia Tank, Bombay, Gandhi
urged the Indians to participate in the Quit India Movement through non-
violent civil disobedience and act as Independent nation. His call found
massive support amongst Indians.
Self-Instructional
Material 189
Partition and Independence Opposition to Quit India
Where the Quit India Movement had the support of the masses, the movement
was opposed by several political parties. Parties like Hindu Mahasabha and
NOTES Communist Party of India opposed the movement and did not rally with the
Congress. The Communist Party of India though against the movement, was
in alliance with the Soviet Union and in support of the war, despite industrial
workers and unions supporting the movement. This led to a ban on the party
by the British government.
The movement also found opposition from various princely states who
feared the loss of their estates in an independent India; and therefore they
funded the opposition.
Several Muslim leaders were also opposed to Quit India Movement
and Muhammad Ali Jinnah’s plea found an audience among large number
of Muslims who responded by supporting by enlisting in British army. The
league gained support in provincial legislatures and as the Congress resigned,
it took control of Sindh, Bengal and Northwest Frontier.
The nationalists however had little international support. Though
United States was supporting the Indian freedom movement theoretically,
it was also an ally of Britain. When Churchill threatened to resign if forced
to, U.S. slyly supported him but continued its pretence to strengthen public
support for war. This move annoyed both Indians and British.
Local activism
Where on one hand the Quit India Movement was facing opposition at the
national level, at the same time the movement was successful at the regional
level where at several places locals had already starting rebelling against the
British.
In Satara, Talcher, Tamluk and Contai subdivisions of Midnapore local
people were establishing their own parallel governments which, however,
were discontinued on the personal request of Gandhi in 1944.
In Ballia, the easternmost district of Uttar Pradesh, local populace
broke a jail and released the arrested Congress leaders and established their
independent rule. It was weeks before Britishers could re-establish themselves
in the district.
In western Gujarat, Saurashtra the tradition of ‘baharvatiya’ (i.e., going
outside the law), supported the activities of the Quit India Movement in the
region. In Bengal, same was fuelled by the resentment of peasants against
the new war taxes and the forced rice exports. The resistance, which, was
at its height in 1942, was stifled by the great famine of 1943 and led to the
suspension of the movement.
Self-Instructional
190 Material
Suppression of the movement Partition and Independence
The movement was primarily designed to keep the Congress party united.
This further alarmed the British, who were already varying of Japanese
army advancing on India-Burma border. In order to control the agitations, NOTES
the British imprisoned Gandhi along with prominent members of Party’s
Working Committee (national leadership). Due to the arrest of major leaders
of Congress, Aruna Asaf Ali, young and relatively unknown till then, presided
at the AICC session on August 9 and hoisted the flag. Later the Congress
party was banned, which only strengthened mass sympathy for the cause and
despite the lack of leadership, demonstrations and protests of large scale were
carried out all over the country. However, not all of these demonstrations were
peaceful, at various places bombs exploded, government buildings were set
on fire, electricity and communication lines were severed.
To these demonstrations, Britishers responded by making mass arrests.
Over 100,000 people were arrested and were fined. Soldiers were also ordered
to flog the demonstrators and shoot if required. Several hundred people
were killed in the shootings. This forced many leaders to go underground
but they continued their struggle by broadcasting over radio and distributing
pamphlets. Looking at the situation, British even set-aside a ship to take
Gandhi and other eminent leaders of South Africa or Yemen, but decided
against it as they were wary about revolt getting further intensified.
The Congress was cut-off from the rest of the world for over three
years. Gandhi lost his wife Kasturba Gandhi and his personal secretary
Mahadev Desai within a very short span. Despite such personal losses and an
indisposed health, Gandhi went on a 21-day fast and maintained his resolve
to continuous resistance. Although the British released Gandhi on account
of his health in 1944, Gandhi kept up the resistance, demanding the release
of the Congress leadership.
By early 1944, India was mostly peaceful again, while the Congress
leadership was still incarcerated. A sense that the movement had failed
depressed many nationalists, while Jinnah and the Muslim League, as well
as Congress opponents like the Communists sought to gain political mileage,
criticizing Gandhi and the Congress Party.
Self-Instructional
Material 191
Partition and Independence
12.3 THE PARTITION AND INDEPENDENCE
The result of so many political events was that many great political leaders
NOTES jointly tried to pave a final way for the attainment of India’s independence.
August Offer, 1940
Meanwhile, a change of government took place in Britain in May 1940 and
Winston Churchill became the Prime Minister (1940–1945). The fall of France
temporarily softened the attitude of the Congress. Britain was in immediate
danger of Nazi occupation. On 1 June 1940, Gandhi wrote, ‘We do not seek
our independence out of British ruin’. As the war was taking a menacing turn
from the allies’ point of view, the Congress offered to cooperate in the war
effort, if at least a provisional National Government was constituted at the
Centre and the right of India to complete independence was acknowledged
by Great Britain. The government’s response came as a statement from the
Viceroy, on 8 August 1940. This was known as the August Offer. It referred
to the need to consult representatives of ‘several communities’ and it was
made clear that the British would not transfer responsibilities ‘to any system
of government’ whose authority is directly denied by large and powerful
elements in India’s national life. This in effect was an approval of one of
Jinnah’s central demands, since the outbreak of the war. Jinnah was not
only the League sole spokesman for India’s Muslims, but he also had the
League’s power to veto any constitutional changes that the League considered
detrimental.
Meanwhile, the British government stated that it would welcome
the efforts of representative Indians themselves to reach a basis of friendly
agreement. They hoped that immediate effect would be given to the
enlargement of the Central Executive Council by nominating additional
Indian members and to the establishment of a War Advisory Council. The
War Advisory Council was believed to comprise representatives of British
India and the Indian states. The August Offer shocked nationalists and
Gandhi at last, sanctioned Civil Disobedience, but of a peculiarly limited and
deliberately ineffective kind. The Congress started its individual Satayagraha.
The first man to court arrest was Vinobha Bhave, the Bhoodan leader. He
was followed by Jawaharlal Nehru, who in November, was sentenced to
four years of rigorous imprisonment. Others, such as Vallabhbhai Patel and
Maulana Azad also participated in this Satyagraha.
Nearly 20,000 Congressmen courted arrest during the 1940–1941.
However, the movement petered out by the autumn of 1941. It was decided
that if the government did not arrest a Satyagrahi, he or she would not only
repeat the performance but would also move into the villages and start a trek
towards Delhi. This marked the beginning of a movement that came to be
Self-Instructional known as the Delhi Chalo movement. The aims clearly were not to cause any
192 Material
serious embarrassment to the British, but merely to register the presence of Partition and Independence
the Congress and hostility to a war being waged without consulting Indians.
This was also meant to give Linlithgow no opportunity for a major crackdown.
At the same time, this movement was also intended to give the British
Government further opportunity to peacefully accept the Indian demands. NOTES
In February, Chiang Kai-Shek, during his visit to India, publicly
expressed sympathy for India’s aspirations for freedom. All this provided
an opening for relatively pro-India groups, particularly Labour members of
War Cabinet like Cripps and Attlee in Britain. These groups persuade the War
Cabinet in the first week of March 1942 to agree to a draft declaration that
promised post-war dominion status with the right of secession. A constitution-
making body was elected by provincial legislatures, with individual provinces
being given the right not to join it and with the states being invited to appoint
representatives. Cripps proposal also had a clause that invited immediate and
effective participation of the leaders of the principal sections of Indians in
the national council on urgent issues. However, this clause also insisted that
the British, during the war, would have to retain the control and direction
of the defence to India. The declaration was not published immediately, but
Cripps went to India on March 23 to negotiate on its basis with Indian leaders.
Negotiations between Cripps and the Congress leaders broke down. The
Congress objected to the provision for Dominion status instead of complete
independence, the representation of the princely states in the constituent
assembly not by the people of the states but by the nominees of the rulers
and above all, by the provision for the partition of India.
The British government also refused to accept the demand for immediate
transfer of effective power to Indians and a real share in the responsibility
for India’s defence of India. Gandhi urged the Working Committee to reject
the post-dated proposal. The reason for the failure was that Cripps was asked
not to go beyond the draft declaration. Moreover, Churchill, the Secretary
of State (Amery), the Viceroy (Linlithgow) and the Commander-in-Chief
(Wavell), did not want Cripps to succeed and constantly sabotaged his efforts
to accommodate Indian opinion. Cripps left behind frustrated and embittered
Indian people.
Cripps’ Proposal
After Japan attacked Pearl Harbour in December 1941, it was evident that
India would be the next target of the Japanese forces. In April 1942, Britain
sent Sir Stafford Cripps to India. He came with an offer for all provinces,
for complete dominion status with the right to leave the Empire and
Commonwealth, after the war. It was also recommended by Cripps that any
province that did not wish to join India could turn into an independent state.
As the war approached India (Singapore fell on 15 February 1942, Rangoon
on 8 March and the Andaman islands on 23 March), the British at last felt
Self-Instructional
Material 193
Partition and Independence obliged to make some gestures to win over India’s public opinion. Roosevelt
raised the topic of Indian political reforms in his talks with Churchill in
Washington, in December 1941. On 2 January, Indian liberal leaders like
Sapru and Jayakar appealed for an immediate dominion status and expansion
NOTES of the Viceroy’s executive into a national government.
Quit India Movement
Cripps’ proposal was rejected by Nehru and the Congress, who instead
demanded a complete cabinet government in which Indians had complete
power of decision-making in India. The concept of independence of provinces
was against the aim of the Congress to create a strong and united India with
central governance. These demands were rejected by the British government.
This followed the Congress’s decision to support Gandhi’s non-violent ‘Quit
India’ campaign. This campaign was declared in August 1942. Independence
with immediate effect was Gandhi’s demand and this demand was supported
by a threat of a movement of mass non-violence (satyagraha). His demand
was that the British move out of India, with the exception of the troops
that were fighting against Japan. Indian cities began to witness peaceful
demonstrations. Later, these demonstrations mostly turned violent. This
movement also blocked supplies for the British forces. In these circumstances
and a constantly declining support base for the British, Mahatma Gandhi
decided to launch a final offensive against the British rule. Thus, the famous
Quit India movement began in August 1942. Following were the reasons for
the outbreak of the movement:
• There was anger and hostility towards meaningless war, especially
when thousands of wounded soldiers returned from the Burmese war.
• Prices of food grains were rising; almost 60-point rise in eastern UP
between April and August 1942. There was also shortage of rice and
salt.
• The majority of British, American and Australian soldiers stationed in
India ill-treated Indians; many of them even raped Indian women.
• The boats of common men, in Bengal and Assam were seized and
destroyed, due to the fear of Japanese attack in Bengal and Assam.
Gandhi wrote in Harijan, ‘To deprive people in East Bengal of boats
is like cutting off vital limbs’ (3 May 1942).
• During the crisis of food grains, Indian markets were controlled by
black marketeers and profiteers. This affected the poor most, especially
in eastern India.
• The war made some traders and capitalist wealthy, but a large section
of Banias and Marwaris started suffering losses in Malaya and Burma,
from mid-1942 onwards. The capitalist element in the Congress
Working Committee took notice of it.
Self-Instructional
194 Material
• The success story of Japanese in South-East Asian countries demystified Partition and Independence
The Indian National Army (INA) was founded by Subhash Chandra Bose
in 1942. They sided with the Axis Powers during the Second World War
(1939– 1945) with a motive to overthrow the colonial powers from the NOTES
Indian soil. The INA was also termed as the ‘Azad Hind Fauz’. Japanese
forces defeated the British in 1941 at Malaya. This incident inspired the
Indian populace residing in Southeast Asia. The Indians came together and
organized a number of associations based out of South East Asia. Pritam Singh
was a leader of such an organization. He, along with Japanese officer, Major
Fujihara, requested Mohan Singh to constitute an Indian Army comprising
the captured Indian soldiers. Though initially reluctant, Mohan Singh yielded
and Fujihara handed over around 40,000 Indian soldiers who had surrendered
to him. This paved the way towards the formation of the INA. Singapore,
surrendered to the Japanese in February 1942. Revolutionary activist Rash
Behari Bose, then residing in Japan arranged an association named Free
Indians living in Japan. A conference was held in Bangkok on 15 June 1942,
where it was decided upon that a National Indian Army would be constituted.
A five member working committee was formed and Rash Behari Bose was
made its president. The formation of the INA was formally declared.
In the meantime, Subhash Bose left Calcutta on 17 January 1941
and arrived in Germany after travelling through Afghanistan. In Berlin, he
organized an India government in exile and extended support to Germany.
He began to broadcast his aims and objectives over Radio Berlin and made
contact with Japan. Bose also came in touch with Adolf Hitler, who extended
his help to the former. This aroused tremendous enthusiasm in India. Indians
in Germany gave him the title of ‘Netaji’ and the slogan of ‘Jai-Hind’ was
initiated here during this time. Bose arrived in Tokyo in June 1943, and
was cordially received by the Hideki Tojo, the Japanese Prime Minister
(1941–44). Japan extended their help to India. A huge crowd gathered at
Singapore to receive Bose when he arrived there on 2 July 1943. On 4 July
Rash Behari Bose resigned and Bose was appointed the president of the
Indian Independence Movement in East Asia. On August 25, Bose took
the leadership of the INA; on 21 October 1943, declared the formation of
the Provisional Government of Azad Hind and on the 23rd declared war on
Britain and America.
With the INA headquarters now shifted to Rangoon, Bose and his
brigade arrived in Rangoon in 1944.
It was decided to keep the Indian detachment as big as a battalion;
that it would be commanded by an Indian and the war would continue as per
the Joint plan of Action. Meanwhile, the Indians were to fight as a separate
unit on selected spots. The battles were to be held at the Kaladan valley of
Arakan and Kalam and Haka centre of China hills to the east of Lusai hills.
Self-Instructional
Material 197
Partition and Independence For this purpose, the Subhash Brigade was divided into three battalions. The
first contingent captured Paletoa and Doletmai as it advanced across both
the banks of Kaladan. Maudak, a British border out-post at a distance of 64
kilometres from Doletmai, was also captured by the battalion a few days later.
NOTES
Soon after, the army ran short of arms and ammunition. Due to this,
many soldiers left the battalion and those who were left were commanded
by Surajmal.
Two other battalion, in the meantime, took charge of the Haka-Kalan
borderline. It was later decided that INA would take position at Kohima,
Nagaland, after the fall of Imphal at Manipur. This was done so as to allow it
to enter Bengal after crossing Brahmaputra. Meanwhile, the Gandhi and Azad
Brigades also advanced towards Imphal. On March 21, the Prime Minister of
Japan announced that those Indian territories which had been freed from the
British would be administered under the provisional independent government
to be formed by Netaji.
Despite various hazards, including the short supply of food and
ammunitions, the INA made advance of 241 kms inside India. A few days after
the Japanese PM had made the declaration, the Americans and the British took
joint steps to invade into Japan. Thus, the latter was forced to withdraw its
support to India. Consequently, the INA also had to make a retreat and when
the allied powers recaptured Burma, it was forced to surrender. It was then
that a proposal was forwarded by Chakravarthi Rajagopalachari to provide a
solution to the political impasse between All India Muslim League and Indian
National Congress. This proposal is also known as the C. Rajagopalachari’s
formula (or C.R. formula or Rajaji formula) and was given on the eve of
the Indian independence from the British. However, Gandhi argued that the
formula conceded to the core demand of the Muslim League. Gandhi wanted
the League to renounce its Lahore Resolution, which he argued was based
on the two-nation theory. On the other hand, Mohammad Ali Jinnah opined
that Gandhi must accept the demand of the League and accept that Hindus
and Muslims were two independent nations.
Wavell Plan and Simla Conference (1945)
After the talks between Gandhi-Jinnah failed, the new viceroy of India
called Wavell, who had Lord Linlithglow, was of the opinion that any new
initiative should be forwarded by the government. On June 14, 1945, new
proposals were put forward in order to make fresh constitutional changes
in India within the framework of the 1935 Government of India Act. On
June 25, 1945, a conference was organized in Shimla in order to bring the
representatives of both the parties on the same table. While the proposals
that were put forward were conciliatory, they also proved unsatisfactory and
provocative for some others. As per the Viceroy, the Executive Council was
Self-Instructional
198 Material
to be completely comprised of Indian except for the Viceroy himself and the Partition and Independence
British Commander-in-Chief.
It was decided that while the special powers of the Viceroy would not
lapse officially but they would not be used ‘unreasonably’. Such characteristics
NOTES
of the proposals, which were divisive in nature to some extent, were also put
on the table at the conference. It was hence decided that both the communities,
i.e. the Hindus and the Muslims, would be equally represented in the Council.
In other words, the demand of the Muslim League for parity on a communal
basis had been officiated through an official declaration of the British policy
for the first time. The summoning of the Simla Conference was the concrete
outcome to the Wavell Plan.
The Simla Conference started on a note of optimism. Gandhi believed
in the sincerity of the Wavell Plan and that it would lead to freedom of the
nation. However, Jinnah ‘flatly refused to cooperate’, as was later reported
by Wavell. He felt that the leader of the Muslim League undermined the
conference and will continue to do so until it conceded to its terms. One of
these demands was that those Muslims who do not belong to the League not
be appointed to the Executive Council. However, Abul Kalam Azad, who
was the then Congress president, firmly opposed such a demand. He felt that
the party would be deceiving its Muslim members if it were to accept the
demands of the Muslim League.
However, Wavell refused to go ahead without the approval of Jinnah.
When Jinnah refused to cooperate, the viceroy announced that the conference
had failed. For many months to come, the Muslim League refused to concede
to the common demands of the proposal. Therefore, the struggle of freedom
came to be dominated with communal colours. While it was now clear that
the British were ready to free India of its clutches, the conflict arose between
those who wished to see India as a united and secular state and those who
wanted a division on religious lines.
Cabinet Mission Plan (1946)
The aim of the British Cabinet Mission of 1946 to India was to discuss and
plan for the transfer of power from the British Raj to Indian leadership. The
objective was to provide India with independence under Dominion status in
the Commonwealth of Nations. The Mission was formulated at the initiative
of Clement Richard Attlee, the Prime Minister of the UK. It comprised of
Lord Pethick-Lawrence, the Secretary of State for India; Sir Stafford Cripps,
President of the Board of Trade; and A.V. Alexander, the First Lord of the
Admiralty. However, Lord Wavell, the Viceroy of India, did not participate.
Background
During the general elections of England, held in 1945, the Labour Party, under
the authority of Attlee, routed the Conservatives, under British Conservative
Self-Instructional
Material 199
Partition and Independence politician and statesman, Winston Churchill. Later on, Lord Wavell was
summoned to London who informed that Britain had decided to quit India.
Soon after, general elections were also held in India in 1945-46 for
provincial assemblies and the legislative assembly at the Centre. In these
NOTES
elections, the Congress won fifty-seven seats in the central legislative
assembly, while the Muslim League took over all the thirty seats reserved
for the Muslims. In 1937, the Congress had 714 seats in the provinces, while
it won 923 seats in 1946.
On the other hand, in 1937, the Muslim League was able to occupy
only 109 seats out of the Muslim quota of 492; however, in 1946, it won 425
seats. The British Cabinet Mission, a special mission of cabinet ministers,
came to India on 24 March 1946 to enable the nation to gain independence
as fast as possible. The Mission was in India for almost five weeks to discuss
important issues with significant representatives of Indian states and those
of British India.
A conference was held on 5 May 1946 at Simla, wherein leaders of the
Congress and the Muslim League participated to discuss about:
• Grouping of provinces
• Character of the federal union
• Setting up of a constitution-making machinery
However, the conference was closed due to incompatibility between
the Congress and the League. On 16 May 1946, the Mission published
a statement, popularly known as the Cabinet Mission Plan, with their
recommendations. The important provisions of the Plan are as follows:
1. A federation comprising of both the princely states and British
India was to be formed, which should deal with defence, foreign
affairs and communications.
2. The federation should comprise of an executive and a legislature.
3. The provinces of British India should be vested with all residuary
powers and all subjects, except for the Union subjects.
4. All subjects would be under the princely states except for those
surrendered to the Union.
5. Provinces should have the liberty to form groups (sub-federal).
6. A provision should be made in the constitution of the Union, which
would allow any province, by a majority vote of its legislative
assembly, to necessitate a reconsideration of the terms of the
Constitution after an initial period of ten years.
7. A constituent assembly should be formed on the basis of the
recently elected provincial legislatures. The assembly should
be formed by allotting to each province a total number of seats
Self-Instructional
200 Material
proportional to its population. Elections should be held by a Partition and Independence
method of proportional representation with single transferable
vote.
8. The administration of the country should be carried out while
NOTES
the Constitution of India was being formulated. An interim
government should also be set up which should have the support
of major political parties.
Direct Action Day
The League decided that 16 August 1946 would be observed as ‘Direct Action
Day’ throughout the country for the purpose of winning the separate Muslim
state. In this tense situation, the viceroy’s decision to invite the Congress to
form the interim government at the Centre added fuel to the fire. In Calcutta,
on 16 August 1946, the League organized public demonstrations and strikes,
resulting in clashes and rioting all over the city. The mob fury continued for
four consecutive days, after which normalcy was gradually restored. The
Bengal government led by the League leader, H.S. Suhrawardy, had declared
16 August a public holiday, which made things worse. Nor did it call the army
until the situation became completely out of control.
Attlee’s Announcement
It was obvious that something drastic had to be done to break the deadlock.
The initiative was taken by Attlee, who on 20 February 1947, announced in
Parliament that the government’s ‘definite intention was to transfer power’
into responsible Indian hands by a date not later than June 1948. This historic
declaration caught everyone by surprise. It was declared that the British would
be pulling out of the country little more than a year hence. The Indian people
would have to settle their differences before then. Attlee, on 20 February 1947,
announced that the British would withdraw from India by 30 June 1948, and
that Lord Mountbatten would replace Wavell.
British powers and obligations vis-à-vis the princely states would lapse
with transfer of power but these would not be transferred to any successor
government in British India. Partition of the country was implicit in the
provision that if the constituent assembly were not fully representative then
power would be transferred to more than one Central government. It was
hoped that fixing a deadline would shock both parties to come to an agreement.
The Muslim League launched civil disobedience in Punjab, which led to the
fall of Punjab Chief Minister, Malik Khizar Hayat Khan’s ministry.
Jinnah saw victory in sight and made a desperate attempt to secure
control over the provinces with Muslim majority. Riots broke out in wild
frenzy in Calcutta, Assam, Punjab and North-West Frontier Province. The
new Viceroy reached India on 22 March 1947. He had come with instructions
Self-Instructional
Material 201
Partition and Independence to work for a united India; but meetings with leaders of different parties and
communities soon convinced him that partition was inevitable. Few people
desired the country’s dismemberment. Gandhi declared that India would be
divided ‘over my dead body’. Abul Kalam Azad was vehemently opposed
NOTES to the creation of Pakistan. But Jinnah was adamant: Muslims must have
their own state.
Mountbatten Plan
Mountbatten now set about convincing Congress leaders of the necessity of
partition. He made use of two opposite lines of reasoning. On the one hand,
he declared that ‘the truncated Pakistan, if conceded now, was bound to
come back later’; on the other hand, he promised that if India’s two unwilling
wings were lopped off, a strong and united Centre would be the result. This
second argument appealed to Home Minister Sardar Patel, who was already
taking into consideration the internal security of the country. Mountbatten
overcame Pandit Jawaharlal Nehru’s objection by an appeal to his democratic
instinct. No community, the Viceroy said, should be forced to join a nation
against its will. Now, it was time to speak with Gandhi. In a last desperate
effort, Gandhi suggested making Jinnah the head of the government of an
undivided India. The Muslim leader could select the entire ministry himself.
But after their sad experiences in the interim government, Patel and Nehru
were unwilling to expose themselves to Jinnah’s caprices. Finally, even
Gandhi relented. Attlee announced the plan in the House of Commons on 3
June 1947, which came to be known as the ‘June 3rd Plan.’ The Government’s
Plan or the Mountbatten Plan dealt with the method by which power will be
transferred from British to Indian hands, in particular the methods by which
Muslim-majority provinces would choose whether they would remain in
India or opt for the ‘new entity’ that is Pakistan. In Sind and Baluchistan,
a straightforward decision would be made by the provincial legislatures.
The legislatures of Bengal and Punjab would have to make two choices;
first, whether the majority was for joining Pakistan, and, if so, whether the
provinces should be partitioned into Muslim and non-Muslim areas. Special
arrangements were made to determine the popular will in the North-West
Frontier Provinces and in the Muslim majority district of Sylhet in Assam.
Boundary commissions would be set up if partition was desired.
The Indian constituent assembly would continue to function but a
separate assembly would be convened for areas that chose to become parts
of Pakistan. The provincial choices went as expected. Baluchistan, Sind
and the North-West Frontier opted for Pakistan. Punjab and Bengal decided
for double partition— the provinces would leave India, but their Muslim-
minority areas would remain parts of the mother country. Sylhet would join
the eastern wing of Pakistan.
Self-Instructional
202 Material
Boundary commissions were set up to delineate frontier between Partition and Independence
Muslim and non-Muslim areas of Punjab and Bengal. The English Chairman
of the two tribunals, Sir Cyril Radcliffe, was ultimately requested to make
his own award. Not only the land, but also the financial and material assets
of India had to be divided. Each of the new nations had to have its own NOTES
civil services and armed forces. Lord Mountbatten showed considerable
‘expedition and dispatch’ in bringing about a solution to these and other
problems before the deadline expired.
The Indian Independence Act of 1947 gave a legal effect to the June
3rd Plan. The Bill was introduced in the British Parliament on 4 July 1947. It
was passed quickly and without amendment, and on 18 July 1947, it received
the Royal assent. India had won her freedom but the price had been partition.
The Dominion of Pakistan was inaugurated in Karachi on 14 August 1947.
At midnight of 15 August 1947, as the clock struck 12, India became free.
Nehru proclaimed it to be the nation with his famous ‘Tryst with Destiny’
speech. On the morning of 15 August 1947, Lord Mountbatten was sworn
in as Governor-General and he in turn swore in Jawaharlal Nehru as the
first Prime Minister of a free India. The 15 August 1947 dawned, revealing
the dual reality of independence and partition. Lakhs of refugees, forced to
leave the lands of their forefathers, were pouring into the two new states. The
symbol of this tragedy at the moment of national triumph was the forlorn
figure of Gandhiji—the man who had given the message of non-violence,
truth, love and courage, and manliness to the Indian people. In the midst of
national rejoicing, he was touring the hate-torn land of Bengal, trying to bring
comfort to people who were even then paying the price of freedom through
senseless communal slaughter.
Indian Independence Act, 1947
The Indian Independence Act declared that the British power over the Indian
states would lapse on 15 August 1947. The states were allowed to join either
India or Pakistan. Before that date, most of the states had signed the Instrument
of Accession by which they agreed to accede to India. But there were some
states which thought that in the changed situation, they were entitled to
declare their independence.
Independence and Partition
The last two years of British rule were marked by tortuous negotiations
between British, Congress and League statesmen. These were increasingly
accompanied by communal violence, culminating in freedom accompanied
by partition and sporadic, localized but often extremely militant and united
mass action—the INA release movement and the RIN mutiny in 1945–1946,
the Tebhaga upsurge in Bengal, Punnapra vayalar in Travancore and the
Telengana peasant armed revolt in Hyderabad.
Self-Instructional
Material 203
Partition and Independence In addition, there were numerous agitations, strikes and demonstrations
all over the country. The mass pressure, thus generated, helped in bringing
about the decisive shift in the British policy. Another important development
was the change in the total objective situation worldwide as well as in India.
NOTES Germany had been destroyed and Japan had surrendered after Hiroshima
bombing in August 1945. Socially radical regimes with communist leadership
or participation were emerging throughout Eastern Europe and seemed
on the point of doing so even in France and Italy. The Chinese revolution
was forging ahead, and a tremendous anti-imperialist wave was sweeping
through South-East Asia with Vietnam and Indonesia resisting efforts to
restore French and Dutch colonial rule. With a war weary army and people
and a ravaged economy, Britain would have had to retreat; the labour victory
further quickened the process somewhat.
The partition was to be effected in the following manner. If the members
of legislative assemblies of Bengal and Punjab were to decide in favour of
partition by a simple majority, a boundary commission, set up by the viceroy,
would demarcate the appropriate boundaries. Sind and Baluchistan would
decide which constituent assembly to join. In the NWFP, there was to be a
referendum to ascertain whether it would join Pakistan or not. The Muslim-
majority district of Sylhet was also to decide by referendum whether it would
join East Bengal or would remain in Assam. The British Parliament would
undertake legislation to transfer power before the end of 1947 to one or two
successor authorities on a dominion status basis. This was to be done without
any prejudice to the final decision of the constituent assembly on whether to
stay in the Commonwealth or not.
The Muslim League accepted the plan within a week and so did the
Congress. The Congress had no alternative, according to Abul Kalam Azad,
but to accept the plan. It was important to arrest the drift towards anarchy
and chaos.
The lesser evil had to be chosen. Partition was better than murder of the
hapless citizens. Gandhi, who had till now steadfastly opposed the division
of India, also supported the resolution. The task was enormous but time was
running out. Punjab and Bengal were divided by two boundary commissions
with Sir Cyril Radcliffe as the chairman of both. East Bengal, West Punjab,
Sind and Baluchistan opted for Pakistan while West Bengal and East Punjab
opted for India. Sylhet threw its lot with Pakistan. In the NWFP, Abdul Gaffar
Khan and the Red Shirts demanded an independent Pakhtoonistan. This was
found to be unacceptable. The Red Shirts did not participate in the plebiscite,
which went in favour of joining Pakistan.
12.3.1 Some Personalities
Let us now briefly discuss some of the personalities associated with the
freedom struggle.
Self-Instructional
204 Material
Mahatma Gandhi Partition and Independence
Mahatma Gandhi was a great leader of our nation. He was born on 2 October
1869. His name was Mohandas Karamchand Gandhi. He was called to the Bar
in England. After returning from England, he started his legal practice in India. NOTES
On the invitation of Gokhale, he went to South Africa where the government
subjected Indians to great discrimination and to the most humiliating treatment
in the early part of the 20th century. He became renowned in South Africa
as a champion of truth, non-violence and the dignity of the human being.
He returned to India in 1914 and dedicated the remaining years of his life to
the cause of his motherland. He decided to fight against the British Raj. The
freedom struggle during this period was called the Gandhian Era (1920–1948).
For the first time in the history of the world, a saint politician was leading
millions of people of a dependent country and teaching them the practical use
of techniques like non-violence, non-co-operation and civil disobedience. In
1942, Gandhi called upon the British to quit India, and the people were asked
to fight for that. Five years after the British left India by granting complete
independence (on 15 August 1947). On 30 January 1948, Gandhi was shot
dead by Nathuram Godse, a Hindu nationalist.
Jawarharlal Nehru
Nerhu was a prominent freedom fighter, second only to Mahatma Gandhi
is the final stages of the freedom struggle. After independence, Jawarharlal
became India’s first Prime Minister and continued to be one of the central
figures in Indian politics before and after independence. The son of prominent
independence leader and moderate Motilal Nehru, Jawaharlal Nehru emerged
as an eminent leader of the Indian independence movement under the tutelage
of Mahatma Gandhi and served India as Prime Minister from its establishment
as an independent nation in 1947 until his death in 1964. He is considered
to be the architect of the modern Indian nation-state: a sovereign, socialist,
secular, and democratic republic.
Motilal Nehru
Motilal Nehru was a prominent figure of the early years of the Indian National
Congress. A moderate, he became the President of the Congress twice,
1919–1920 and 1928–1929. He also joined the Swaraj faction and attempted
to enter the British-sponsored councils.
Mohammad Ali Jinnah
Mohammad Ali Jinnah was an Indian freedom fighter, preeminent leader
of the Muslim League and went on to become the first Prime Minister of
Independence Pakistan. In the early years of his political life, Jinnah had
been the symbol of Hindu-Muslim unity, working within the Congress Party
to bring independence to India. However, after becoming disenchanted by
Self-Instructional
Material 205
Partition and Independence the Congress, he joined the Muslim League and became the most important
backer of Pakistan.
C. Rajagopalachari
NOTES C. Rajagopalachari was a prominent freedom fighter, member of the Indian
National Congress, who went on to become the last Governor-General of
India, serving till the time India became a republic. During the years in the
freedom struggle, he favoured talks with both Muhammad Ali Jinnah and
the Muslim League and proposed what later came to be known as the C. R.
formula. After independence, he became a prominent politician from Southern
India, founding the conservative Swatantra Party and became a fierce critic
of Jawaharlal Nehru.
1. Where the Quit India Movement had the support of the masses, the
movement was opposed by several political parties. Parties like Hindu
Mahasabha and Communist Party of India opposed the movement and
did not rally with the Congress.
2. Despite several leaders opposing the resolution, on 8 August 1942,
Quit India resolution was passed at the Bombay session of All India
Congress Committee (AICC).
3. Cripps’ proposal was rejected by Nehru and the Congress, who
instead demanded a complete cabinet government in which Indians
had complete power of decision-making in India. The concept of
independence of provinces was against the aim of the Congress to
create a strong and united India with central governance.
4. The aim of the British Cabinet Mission of 1946 to India was to discuss
and plan for the transfer of power from the British Raj to Indian
leadership. The objective was to provide India with independence
under Dominion status in the Commonwealth of Nations.
5. The Indian Independence Act declared that the British power over the
Indian states would lapse on 15 August 1947. The states were allowed
to join either India or Pakistan.
Self-Instructional
206 Material
Partition and Independence
12.5 SUMMARY
Self-Instructional
Material 207
Partition and Independence particular the methods by which Muslim-majority provinces would
choose whether they would remain in India or opt for the ‘new entity’
that is Pakistan.
• The Indian Independence Act declared that the British power over the
NOTES
Indian states would lapse on 15 August 1947. The states were allowed
to join either India or Pakistan.
Self-Instructional
208 Material
Partition and Independence
12.8 FURTHER READINGS
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House. NOTES
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Chandra, Bipin. 2009. History of Modern India. Hyderabad: Orient
Blackswan.
Dube-Bannerjee, Ishita. 2015. A History of Modern India. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press.
Tarique, Mohammad. 2007. Modern Indian History. New Delhi: Tata
McGraw-Hill Education.
Self-Instructional
Material 209
Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions BLOCK – V
Under the British
SOCIAL AND ADMINISTRATIVE REFORMS
UNDER THE BRITISH RULE
NOTES
13.0 INTRODUCTION
India had been the hub of civilization based on trade and strong agrarian
economy since ancient times. This enormous wealth had been the cause of
envy of invaders who had been invading the region for thousands of years.
Some of them were the Mongols, Central Asians, Arabs and especially the
British.
The economic impact of the British rule was extensive and resulted
in the degradation of the economy so much so that before the advent of the
British, it was estimated that the economy of India represented 25 per cent
of the global economy and by the time of their departure in 1947, this was
reduced to 2 per cent.
The East India Company set up their economic roots in India by using
various goods and services to lure the existing rulers and kings. The two
decades of colonial rule harmed the country in various ways. The British
determined trade and commerce. British ships carried most of the India’s
exports and imports, with tariffs and other charges that were determined
by British governments. The British had control almost over all forms of
trade—internal and external. Thus, with the advent of British rule in India,
the entire structure of Indian industries changed.
Self-Instructional
210 Material
Each industry has its own history of origin. The foundation of cotton Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions
industry was laid in western India at the same time as the jute industry was Under the British
established in Bengal. Initially, the industries were dominated by Indian,
but with the colonial rule, the power shifted into the hands of British. The
entire marketing scenario in India changed. Now, the motive of the colonial NOTES
Government India was to export raw materials from India and import
manufactured goods in the Indian market. There was huge exploitation of
the Indian economy and the Indian labourers. Also, the entire Indian market
witnessed major structural change with time.
The British conquest had a pronounced and profound impact on India.
There was hardly any aspect of the Indian economy and polity that was not
changed for better or for worse during the entire period (1757–1947) of British
rule. The drain of wealth theory which was propounded by early nationalists
had both economic as well as political effects. The Government of India
Act of 1919 and 1935 were regarded as the two milestones on the highway
leading to a full responsible government. In terms of social and religious
reform, the British carried out a number of reforms that were supported by
Indian social reformers. We will begin the unit by discussing these social
and religious reforms.
13.1 OBJECTIVES
Self-Instructional
216 Material
Arya Samaj: A Revivalist Movement Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions
Under the British
The Arya Samaj movement was an outcome of the reaction to Western
influences. It was revivalist in form but not in content. The founder of the
movement, Swami Dayanand, rejected Western ideas and sought to revive NOTES
the ancient religion of the Aryans.
Dayanand’s idea was to unite India religiously, socially and nationally—
Aryan religion to be the common religion of all, a classless and casteless
society, and an India free from foreign rule. He considered the Vedas as India’s
‘Rock of Ages’, the true original seed of Hinduism. His motto was ‘Go back
to the Vedas’. He gave his own interpretation of the Vedas. He disregarded the
authority of the later Hindu scriptures like the Puranas and described them as
the work of lesser men and responsible for the evil practices of idol worship
and other superstitious beliefs in Hindu religion. Dayanand condemned idol
worship and preached unity of Godhead. He decried untouchability and
casteism as not sanctioned by the Vedas. He advocated widow remarriage
and a high status for woman in society. His views were published in his
famous work Satyartha Prakash (The True Exposition). While the Brahmo
Samaj and the Theosophical Society appealed to the English educated elite
only, Dayanand’s message was for the masses of India. The movement was
popular in Punjab, Uttar Pradesh and Rajasthan.
Arya Samaj’s Programmes
• Education: Dayananda wanted to revive the knowledge of Sanskrit
literature. He made it the responsibility of Arya Samaj to run Gurkulas
where the Indian young minds can be educated in terms of Indian
culture and civilization. He wanted that these young men should be
taught the value of high moral character. They should be nourished,
brought up and developed in an atmosphere where patriotism was
above everything else. Gurukuls should be centres of Vedic study and
research. The Arya Samaj should rise against social evils.
• Social reforms: Dayanand felt that orthodoxy was bound to oppose
such regeneration in Hindu society. He made it obligatory on the
part of Arya Samajists to stand for widow re-marriage and oppose
child marriage or caste system and other evils or similar institutions
vehemently which had corrupted the Hindu society. Keeping in view
the trend of the time, Dayanand asked the Arya Samajists to expose
what was unwanted in the religious doctrines and books of other
religions so that missionaries were demoralized, and they hesitated from
condemning and criticizing Hindu religious teachings and philosophy.
Dayanand propagated shuddhi by which he meant that those who
wanted to willingly re-embrace Hindu religion should not be forbidden
to do so.
Self-Instructional
Material 217
Social, Economic and • Democratic constitution: Dayananand introduced elective system in
Religious Conditions
Under the British the constitution of Arya Samaj which was then unknown to the religious
institutions of those days. He laid down that Arya Samaj should be
organized on democratic lines. Arya Samajists were obliged to see that
NOTES their office-bearers were elected by their members and that there were
no hereditary or nominated members.
• Political reforms: In the political field, Dayanand made the Arya
Samajists aware that it was obligatory for them to preach and propagate
the use of Swadeshi and also demand self-government. There should
be decentralization of authority and a desire on the part of government
to place individual above everything else.
Arya Samaj was responsible for political, social and economic
resurgence in India. It had deep influence on many contemporaries. Most
of the national leaders closely studied the doctrines of Arya Samaj. The
influence of Arya Samaj is evident from the fact that among those who were
influenced by it were persons like Lala Har Dayal, Har Krishan Lal, Krishan
Lal, Krishan Verma, Gopal Krishna Gokhale, Mahatma Gandhi and Rabindra
Nath Tagore. In the north-west India, the influence of Arya Samaj was felt
even in the very early stages of its development.
It was due to the work and contribution of Arya Samaj that ancient
Indian glory was revived and a network of Gurukuls set up for educating
young men and women of India. Arya Samaj acted as a check against the
influence of Christianity on Hindu society.
Ramakrishna Mission
This movement was started by Sri Ramakrishna Paramhamsa in Bengal.
Sri Ramakrishna was a simple village priest. Yet the entire middle class,
Western-educated Bengali community made him their national hero. Men
like Keshav Chandra Sen, Bankim Chandra Chatterjee (novelist), and Girish
Chandra Ghosh (dramatist), regarded him as a saint. Ramakrishna, whose
early upbringing had been among people untouched by English ideas, had
stood as an inspiration to a whole generation.
The national awakening of the Indian people also found expression
in the movement inspired by Ramakrishna. He sought religious salvation in
the traditional ways of reincarnation, meditation and devotion (bhakti), in
his search for religious truth or realization of God. He lived with mystics of
other faiths, including Muslims and Christians. He emphasized that there were
many roads to God and salvation and that service to mankind was service to
God, for man was the embodiment of God.
It was his great disciple, Swami Vivekananda, who after the death of
the saint founded the Ramakrishna Mission (1897) to propagate his teachings.
The mission aimed at protecting Indians from materialistic influences of the
Self-Instructional
218 Material
western civilization. It idealized Hinduism, including its practice of idol Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions
worship and polytheism. It aimed at spiritual conquest of the world through Under the British
revived Hinduism.
The Mission had many branches in different parts of the country and
NOTES
carried on social services by opening schools, hospitals and dispensaries,
orphanages, and libraries. The movement did not stress on personal salvation
but on social good or social service.
Vivekananda intended to make the Mission an institution devoted
entirely to the cause of national service. He established homes of social
service and religious discipline in different parts of the country. These were
used by the monks who were made to go through a period of training and
discipline before they were permitted to be initiated into the order. Sewa
ashramas had grown all over the country. The Ramakrishna Mission differed
from other social and religious movements in the respect that it laid emphasis
on that aspect of Vedanta which encouraged universalism in its religious
conception. Vivekananda in his interpretation of Hindu religion raised it to
a universal status.
Vivekananda’s intrepid patriotism gave a new colour to the nationalist
movement throughout India. Annie Besant described him as a ‘warrior-monk’,
and he was clearly deeply influenced by the political thinking of his time.
Vivekananda contributed immensely to the new awakening of India.
Theosophical Movement
Theosophy (from Greek theosophia [theos meaning divine + sophia meaning
wisdom]; literally ‘divine wisdom’) can be defined as a system that speculates
or investigates direct knowledge related to the mysteries of living beings
and the nature, specifically focusing on the character of divinity. Theosophy
is also regarded as a fragment of the larger discipline of esotericism, which
refers to concealed knowledge or wisdom which can enlighten an individual
and provide salvation. A theosophist seeks to learn about the mysteries of
the universe and the factors that bond the universe with human beings and
the celestial world. Theosophy aims to explore the source of eternity and
humanity (theogony and anthropogony), which includes, end of the world, life
and humanity (eschatology). This study leads to a rational discovery about the
purpose and source of the universe (cosmogony). The hieroglyphs of nature
are investigated into, by a theosophist (insights, or poetic interpretations, in
flowers, rainbows). Theosophy makes use of a technique of interpretation,
which is based upon a particular myth or revelation. This revelation applies
dynamic thinking to extract symbolic significances and to pursue knowledge
until these mysteries are completely understood.
The Theosophical Society was established as an organization in
1875, for developing spiritual tenets and seeking the truth. This process is
Self-Instructional
Material 219
Social, Economic and called Theosophy. The original organization underwent many divisions and
Religious Conditions
Under the British alterations and resulted in (as of 2011) many successors. Today, theosophy
is a dynamic school of philosophy, which has promoted other mystical,
philosophical and religious schools of thoughts after undergoing various
NOTES divisions.
History of the Theosophical Society
The idea of forming the Theosophical Society was first proposed in New York
City on 8 September 1875. However, this society was brought into official
existence in November 1875, by Helena Blavatsky, Henry Steel Olcott,
William Quan Judge and others. The fundamental goal of this Society was
‘study and elucidation of Occultism, the Cabala’. A few years later, Olcott and
Blavatsky came to India and set up its international headquarters at Adyar,
in Madras (Chennai). The study of religions of the East also interested them,
so they included them in the schema of the Society. Many exercises were
undertaken to develop the objectives of the Society. The objectives that were
developed are as follows:
• Forming of a nucleus of the universal brotherhood of humanity, without
discrimination on the basis of race, creed, sex, caste, or colour
• Encouraging learning of comparative religion, philosophy and science
• Investigating the unexplained laws of nature and hidden strength of
man
• The Society was structured like a non-sectarian body. The constitution
and rules of the Theosophical Society were as follows:
• The Theosophical Society is perfectly non-sectarian and requires no
obligatory belief, faith or creed to qualify as its member.
• However, anyone who applies for membership, or becomes its member
should sympathize with the efforts directed at creating a nucleus of
the Universal Brotherhood of Humanity. This view of the Society
was formulated again in a resolution that the General Council of the
Theosophical Society passed on 23 December 1924.
One of the main tenets of philosophy that the Society promoted was
a complicated doctrine of The Intelligent Evolution of All Existence, which
occurred on a cosmic scale. This comprised both, physical and non-physical
features of both, the known and unknown aspects of the universe. All its
constituent parts were affected, irrespective of their size or significance.
The Secret Doctrine of the work of art of Helena Blavatsky propagated this
concept in 1888. This view stated that the evolution of humanity on the Earth
(and beyond) was part of the larger cosmic evolution. A hidden spiritual
hierarchy administers this evolution. This hierarchy is also referred to as the
Masters of Ancient Wisdom. Advanced spiritual beings top this hierarchy.
The Theosophical Society was represented by Blavatsky, as one of the many
Self-Instructional
220 Material
attempts by this hidden hierarchy to guide humanity. Humanity is guided Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions
towards its final and incontrovertible goal of evolution, which is achievement Under the British
of excellence and conscious and willing partaking in the process of evolution.
An earthly infrastructure is required for these attempts to succeed (such as
the Theosophical Society). Finally, it was agreed that a number of Mahatmas, NOTES
who were members of the hierarchy were inspiring the Society.
Divisions in the Theosophical Society
In 1891, after Helena Blavatsky died, the leaders of the Society initially
seemed to work in unison. However, this harmony was short-lived. Judge
broke off with Olcott and Annie Besant in 1895, after charging both of them
with forgery of letters from the Mahatmas. The larger American section of
the society was taken by him. The original organization, whose leaders were
Olcott and Besant, is still intact in India under the title, the Theosophical
Society—Adyar. Judge’s organization further split into two factions, one
was led by Katherine Tingley and the other was headed by Judge’s secretary,
Ernest Temple Hargrove. Hargrove’s faction does not exist now. However,
Tingley’s faction is now referred to as ‘the Theosophical Society-International
Headquarters, Pasadena, California’. In 1909, another faction had broken
away from Tingley’s faction and formed the United Lodge of Theosophists
or ULT.
In 1902, The German/Austrian division of the Theosophical
Society appointed Rudolf Steiner as its General Secretary. He was more
inclined towards the West, making the organization very different from
its Adyar headquarters. The German division came into existence after
serious philosophical conflicts with Annie Besant and other members of
the International leadership. These conflicts were regarding the spiritual
importance of Jesus. Most of the German and Austrian members disassociated
themselves from the original Society in 1913 and set up the Anthroposophical
Society. The branches of the latter are still operational in many countries
around the world today, including the US and Canada.
The ‘World Teacher’
In 1889, Blavatsky added another objective to those that already existed.
She made a public declaration that the Society was also set up to create a
‘World Teacher’ for humanity. She said that human beings should be receptive
towards this World Teacher. The Theosophical doctrine of the ‘World Teacher’
was a manifested aspect of a sophisticated spiritual entity (the Maitreya) that
periodically appeared on the Earth, to direct the evolution of mankind. The
mission of this spiritual entity was to simplify the knowledge that could help
humanity evolve in a better way, for modern human beings to understand.
When Besant took over as president of the Society in 1907, she believed that
the World Teacher would emerge sooner than Blavatsky had predicted (last
quarter of the 20th century). Self-Instructional
Material 221
Social, Economic and Jiddu Krishnamurti
Religious Conditions
Under the British
Charles Webster Leadbeater was one of the people who expected that Lord
Maitreya would imminently appear as the ‘World Teacher’. Leadbeater,
NOTES was an influential theosophist and occultist. In 1909, he came across Jiddu
Krishnamurti, an adolescent Indian boy, who according to Leadbeater,
was a prospective contender for the vehicle of the ‘World Teacher’. Some
months earlier, Krishnamurti’s family had moved to the headquarters of the
Theosophical Society in Adyar, India. After he came to limelight, the Society
took Krishnamurti under it and he underwent extensive grooming to prepare
him for his mission. However, by 1925, Krishnamurti had started to deviate
from the course assigned to him by the leaders of the Theosophical Society
in Adyar and several other Theosophists. In 1929, the Order of the Star was
destroyed by him in public. The Order of the Star was a global society that
was established by the leadership of the Theosophical Society to prepare
the world for the advent of the Maitreya. He also discarded the role of the
‘vehicle’ played by him, for the ‘World Teacher’. Finally, he resigned from
the Theosophical Society, though individual members of the Society were
still his friends. The remaining part of his life was spent by him in travelling
across the world as an independent speaker. He became well-known for
the originality of his thoughts on subjects like spirituality, philosophy and
psychology.
Controversy and Racial Beliefs
According to Helena Blavatsky, the evolution of humanity comprised of a
range of stages known as Root Races. Aryans belonged to the Fifth Root
Race (out of seven). However, Root Races are not the same as ethnicities.
Evolutionary stages of the whole humanity are represented by them. Every
successive Root Race is more developed than the previous one. Blavatsky’s
teachings pointed out that the Atlantis was the centre for the earlier stage
of evolution, in the period of the Fourth Root-Race. At that time, the Aryan
Root Race had progressed only one more step in the evolutionary progression.
Finally, the more spiritual Sixth Root Race superseded it.
Anthropology, sociology and other faculties have defined race in a more
comparative and limited way. No person or group was considered as superior
by Blavatsky. The idea of common origin and destiny for every human
being and the principle of universal brotherhood, as the First Object of the
Theosophical Society, were promoted by Blavatsky. Religious tolerance and
inclusiveness were also asserted by her. She said, ‘Theosophists, collectively
respect the Bible as much as they do the sacred scriptures of other people,
finding in it the same eternal truths as in the Vedas, the Zend-Avesta, the
Tripitakas, etc.’ Additionally, Austrian/German ultra-nationalist, Guido von
List and his followers, later selected parts of Blavatsky’s occult philosophy
and blended them with ideas of nationalism and fascism. This system of
Self-Instructional
222 Material
thinking was referred to as Ariosophy. A few of the researchers, who traced Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions
the connection of Ariosophy with Theosophy, stated that the latter primarily Under the British
depends on ‘intellectual expositions of racial evolution’. Nevertheless,
Blavatsky said in The Key to Theosophy, ‘The Society is a philanthropic and
scientific body for the propagation of the idea of brotherhood on practical NOTES
instead of theoretical lines.’
Related Individuals and Organizations
Other organizations that have been associated with the original Theosophical
Society, its philosophy, leaders, branches, or descendant organizations, at
some or the other point of time are as follows:
• Agni Yoga
• Ananda College
• Anthroposophy
• Alice Bailey
• The Bridge to Freedom
• Church Universal and Triumphant
• James Cousins
• Halcyon, California
• Hugh Dowding
• ‘I AM’ Activity
• Anna Kingsford
• Liberal Catholic Church
• Order of the Temple of the Rosy Cross
• Elizabeth Clare Prophet
• Nilakanta Sri Ram
• Jorge Ángel Livraga Rizzi
• Schola Philosophicae Initiationis
• Share International
• Theosophical Society of the Arya Samaj
• Brother XII (Edward Arthur Wilson)
Miscellaneous Reform Movements
Let us discuss some other reforms movements in India.
Young Bengal Movement: It was started by an Anglo-Indian, Henry Vivian
Derozio, considered to be the first nationalist poet of India. He became a teacher
at Hindu College (Calcutta) in 1826. His followers were known as Derozians.
Unlike the Brahmo Samajists, the Derozians were radical in their approach.
Self-Instructional
Material 223
Social, Economic and Rahnumai Muzdyayan: An Association for the socio-religion reform among
Religious Conditions
Under the British the Parsis was founded in 1851 at Bombay by Dadabhai Naoroji, Furdunji
Naoroji, K.R. Cama and S.S. Bengales. They opposed social practices such
as child marriage, dependence on astrology and orthodoxy in the Parsi
NOTES society in India. Rust Goftar (Truth Teller), published in Gujrati, was issued
by Dadabhai Naoroji. It was the mouthpiece of this association.
Singh Sabha: It was founded in 1873 at Amritsar by Thakur Singh Sandhwalia
and Giani Gian Singh. It had the following objectives:
• To introduce western education within the Sikh Community
• To counter the proselytizing activities of the Christian missionaries as
well as Hindu revivalists
• To open Khalsa schools and colleges throughout Punjab. The Akali
Movement was an off-shoot of the Singh Sabha.
Prarthana Samaj
The Prarthana Samaj critically examined the relations between contemporary
social and cultural systems and religious beliefs and gave priority to social
reforms as compared to the political changes already initiated by the British
government. Their comprehensive reform movement has led many impressive
projects of cultural change and social reform in Western India, such as the
improvement of women and depressed classes, an end to the caste system,
abolition of child marriage and infanticide, educational opportunities for
women and remarriage of widows. Its success was guided by Sir Ramakrishna
Gopal Bhandarkar, a noted Sanskrit scholar, Atmaram Pandurang, Narayan
Chandavarkar, and Justice Mahadev Govinda Ranade. Ranade emphasized
that ‘the reformer must attempt to deal with the whole man and not to carry
out reform on one side only’. ‘The social organism in India,’ according to
Ranade, ‘shows a growth which should not be ignored and cannot be forcibly
suppressed’. Maharshi Vitthal Ramji Shinde championed the complete
eradication of caste and untouchability. He founded the first depressed classes
mission.
By comparison with the parallel Brahmo Samaj of Bengal and the
ideals of rational or theistic belief and social reform, the Prarthana Samaj(ists)
were followers of the great religious tradition of the Maratha saints like
Namdev, Tukaram and Ramdas (the guru of Shivaji). The Brahmo Samaj
founders examined many world religions, including ancient Vedic texts,
which subsequently were not accepted to be infallible or divine. Although
the adherents of Prarthana Samaj were devoted theists, they also did not
regard the Vedas as divine or infallible. They drew their inspiration from the
Hindu scriptures and used the hymns of the old Marathi ‘poet-saints’ in their
prayers. Their ideas trace back to the devotional poems of the Vitthalasas
part of the Vaishnava bhakti devotional movements of the thirteenth century
Self-Instructional
224 Material
in southern Maharashtra. The Marathi poets had inspired the movement of Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions
resistance against the Mughals, but, beyond religious concerns, the primary Under the British
focus of the Prarthana Samaj was on social and cultural reforms.
Doctrines of Prarthana Samaj NOTES
The Prarthana Samaj was started in Bombay. It was inspired by the Brahmo
Samaj but was milder and less radical in its principles. Theistic worship comes
first, followed closely by social reforms— abandonment of caste, widow
remarriage, female education and the abolition of child marriage. Many
members hold the view that definite beliefs and theological thought are not
necessary for a free theistic movement. Others have produced theological
and devotional books. Though their theism is based on ancient Hindu texts,
they have practically given up the inspiration of the Vedas and belief in
transmigration. The Samaj defines its faith as follows:
• God is the creator of this universe. He is the only true God; there is no
other God beside him. He is eternal, spiritual, infinite, the store of all
good, all joy, without parts, without form, one without a second, the
ruler of all, all-pervading, omniscient, almighty, merciful, all-holy and
the saviour of sinners.
• His worship alone leads to happiness in this world and the next.
• Love and reverence for him, an exclusive faith in him, praying and
singing to him spiritually with these feelings and doing the things
pleasing to him constitute His true worship.
• To worship and pray to images and other created objects is not a true
mode of divine adoration.
• God does not incarnate himself and there is no one book which has
been directly revealed by God or is wholly infallible.
• All men are His children; therefore they should behave towards each
other as brethren without distinction.
This doctrine was very similar to the Brahmo Samaj but with one
significant difference. The Prarthana Samaj bases its worship on the devotional
poems of the Vitthalas, especially those of Tukaram.
History of Prarthana Samaj
Two secret societies preceded the Prarthana Samaj. We know very little
about the Gupta Sabha. This was followed in 1849 by the Paramahamsa
Sabha established by Ram Balkrishna Jaykar and others. Members had to
eat bread baked by a Christian and drink water brought by a Muslim. The
Samaj had about a thousand members in Poona, Ahmedabad, Ratnagiri and
elsewhere in western India. Orthodox opposition resulted in the documents
being stolen in 1860 and the names of the members being made public. This
Self-Instructional
Material 225
Social, Economic and led to widespread panic. Some members converted to Christianity, while
Religious Conditions
Under the British others held steadafast to their convictions. The ones who held on to their
religious convictions went on to establish the Prarthana Samaj in Bombay
in 1867. These founder members were educated Indians and their leader was
NOTES Dr Atmaram Pandurang (1823-1898), a personal friend of Dr Wilson, who
founded the Wilson College in 1835. The Brahmo Samaj made an important
impression on these men. In 1864, Keshub Chander Sen visited Bombay,
and again in 1868. In 1872, Pratap Chandra, another great Brahmo, visited
at the invitation of the Prarthana Samaj. During his visit, a plan was made
for the Prarthana Samaj to become a branch of the Brahmo Samaj. This was
prevented by Mahadeo Ranade by pointing out the splits among the Brahmos
of Bengal which could be echoed in Bombay, while Dr Bhandarkar did
not approve of the extremism and Christian bias of Keshub Chandra Sen.
Similarly, when Dayananda Saraswati came to Bombay in 1874, there was
great interest in his lectures and the next year he founded the Arya Samaj in
Bombay. However, his ideas on the Vedas stopped the Prarthana Samaj from
joining him. Hence, the Prarthana Samaj continued as an independent reform
movement. In Bombay, this was the most important and well-organized
movement of the time as it was sponsored by leading personalities.
The mildness of the Prarthana Samaj has meant that there have never
been groups of missionaries as in the Brahmo Samaj. With only one or
two missionaries, the movement did not spread extensively. However, the
mildness of the Samaj has been appreciated in South India, particularly in
Andhra Pradesh and Tamil Nadu, where the Prarthana Samaj was the most
popular of all such institutions.
The Samaj ran the Young Theists Union, the Postal Mission to send
religious literature, the Subodh Patrika, night schools, and a ladies association.
It is also associated with The Students Brotherhood, an Orphanage and
Foundling Asylum in Pandharpur and the organization of the Social Reform
Movement and the Depressed Classes Mission. Every year an All-India
Theistic
Conference is attended by both the Brahmo Samaj and the Prarthana
Samaj.
Though the Prarthana Samaj is opposed to image worship, in practice,
members follow the ceremonies of Hinduism though regarding them as of no
religious importance. Thus, Samaj members can still practice image worship
in their homes and be part of the caste system. It is said that the Prarthana
Samaj paid allegiance to Hinduism with a protest. There are no official figures
for the number of adherents within the movement. They are mainly to be
found in west and south India.
Self-Instructional
226 Material
Muslim Reform Movements Social, Economic and
Religious Conditions
Under the British
Some of the Muslim reform movements are discussed below:
1. Aligarh Movement
NOTES
The Aligarh Movement was a prominent Muslim socio-religious movement
in India and was led by Sayyid Ahmad Khan. Sayyid Ahmad Khan was born
into a prestigious family of Delhi and spent his childhood in and out of the
Mughal court. He studied Arabic and Persian according to the older pattern
and also studied the work of Shah Wali Ullah. Though he did not receive any
religious education, he demonstrated a personality more akin to a courtier
or government official than to an Ulama. Sayyid Ahmad Khan believed that
the future of Islam rested with the fortunes of Muslims, particularly those
residing in northern India. He started to attract others with his writings and
soon founded a variety of public forums for spreading his ideas. He soon
emerged as a prominent leader of the Muslim community.
Sayyid Ahmad Khan believed that the dilemma of the Muslims in
India laid in an education that disseminated elements of English knowledge
within the Islamic context. Aiming at solving this dilemma, he planned to
open an educational institution that would educate the Muslims properly. He
established the Muhammadan Anglo-Oriental College in Aligarh in June,
1875. It developed into the Aligarh Muslim University in 1890. The main
objective of Sayyid Ahmad Khan behind founding the institution was to
supply educated, honest, public-spirited leaders able to work with the English
government and to protect the Muslim community.
The Aligarh Movement was actually an educational movement with a
view to purify Islam and it marked a sharp break with previous attempts to
purify Islam and return it to its past glory. The vision of the movement was
to create an administrative elite class that would govern in cooperation with
the British rather than focus its attention on the Ulama. Through the 1850s,
Syed Ahmed Khan began developing a strong passion for education. While
pursuing studies of different subjects including European jurisprudence, Sir
Syed began to realize the advantages of Western-style education, which was
offered at newly established colleges across India.
Despite being a devout Muslim, Sir Syed criticized the influence of
traditional dogma and religious orthodoxy, which had made most Indian
Muslims suspicious of British influences. He became increasingly concerned
for the future of the Muslim communities. A scion of Mughal nobility, Sir Syed
had been reared in the finest traditions of Muslim élite culture and was aware
of the steady decline of Muslim political power across India. The animosity
between the British and Muslims before and after the rebellion (Independence
War) of 1857 threatened to marginalize Muslim communities across India
Self-Instructional
Material 227
Social, Economic and for many generations. He intensified his work to promote cooperation with
Religious Conditions
Under the British British authorities, promoting loyalty to the empire amongst Indian Muslims.
Committed to working for the upliftment of Muslims, Sir Syed founded a
modern madrassa in Muradabad in 1859; this was one of the first religious
NOTES schools to impart scientific education.
The Aligarh Movement was successful in spreading western education
among Muslims without weakening their commitment to Islam. The second
task it undertook was to introduce social reforms in the Muslim society. The
Aligarh Movement strived to evolve the Muslim community as a distinct
social and cultural community, on the lines of modernism. The Aligarh
Movement was based on the interpretation of the Quran. It tried to blend
Islam and the modern liberal culture. Inspired by the Aligarh Movement,
several progressive movements came up in Bombay, Punjab, Hyderabad
and other places.
2. Wahabi Movement
It was started by Syed Ahmad of Rae Bareli (1786–1831). The Wahabi
Movement was basically a revivalist movement, started in India under
the influence of Abdul Wahab of Arabia and Shah Waliullah’s teachings.
The aim of this movement was the purification of Islam and conversion of
Dar-ul-Harb into Dar-ul-Islam. The movement condemned all changes and
innovations in Islam. The movement held that the return to the true spirit of
Islam was the only way to get rid of the socio-political oppression. Sithana
in North-western border was its headquarter. In the revolt of 1857, the
Wahabis played a notable role in spreading anti-British sentiments. The period
between1863-65 witnessed a series of trials in which all the principal leaders
of the Wahabi movement were arrested. One of the most respected leader of
the Movement, Ibrahim Mandal of Islampur, was convicted for organizing
movement at Raj Shahi in the Raj Mahal trial (1870) and was sentenced for
life and was send off to the Andamans. However, he was released by Lord
Lytton in 1878. Historians are of the opinion that though the Wahabis spread
anti-British sentiments, they did not have exact participation in anti- British
Military activities.
Self-Instructional
228 Material
Social, Economic and
13.3 ECONOMIC CONDITION OF THE PEOPLE Religious Conditions
Under the British
13.5 SUMMARY
• Raja Ram Mohan Roy along with Dwarkanath Tagore founded the
Brahmo Sabha in 1828, which engendered the Brahmo Samaj, an
influential Indian socio-religious reform movement during the Bengal
Renaissance.
• In 1866, the Brahmo Samaj soon split up into two groups.
• Ram Mohan vehemently opposed the practice of Sati.
• Iswar Chandra Vidyasagar’s most memorable stand was his bold
advocacy of widow remarriage in the teeth of strong conservative
opposition.
• Vidyasagar successfully persuaded the colonial government to pass
the Hindu Widow Remarriage Act in 1856.
• The Arya Samaj movement was an outcome of the reaction to Western
influences. It was revivalist in form but not in content.
Self-Instructional
Material 233
Social, Economic and • The founder of the Arya Samaj movement, Swami Dayanand, rejected
Religious Conditions
Under the British Western ideas and sought to revive the ancient religion of the Aryans.
• Arya Samaj was responsible for political, social and economic
NOTES resurgence in India.
• Swami Vivekananda, who after the death of the Ramakrishna
Paramhamsan, founded the Ramakrishna Mission (1897) to propagate
his teachings.
• The Theosophical Society was established as an organization, in 1875,
for developing spiritual tenets and seeking the truth.
• The Prarthana Samaj reform movement has led many impressive
projects of cultural change and social reform in Western India, such
as the improvement of women and depressed classes, an end to the
caste system, abolition of child marriage and infanticide, educational
opportunities for women and remarriage of widows.
• The Aligarh movement was a prominent Muslim socio-religious
movement in India and was led by Sayyid Ahmad Khan.
• Sayyid Ahmad Khan established the Muhammadan Anglo-Oriental
College in Aligarh in June, 1875which later developed into the Aligarh
Muslim University in 1890.
• The Aligarh Movement was successful in spreading western education
among Muslims without weakening their commitment to Islam. The
second task it undertook was to introduce social reforms in the Muslim
society.
• The Wahabi Movement was basically a revivalist movement, started
in India under the influence of Abdul Wahab of Arabia and Shah
Waliullah’s teachings.
• The aim of the Wahabi movement was the purification of Islam and
conversion of Dar-ul-Harb into Dar-ul-Islam.
• Initially, India was a self-sufficient country. It was rich in all natural
and agricultural resources but when the British landed in India they
succeeded in carving out a strong Empire here.
• The British ruled for two centuries and brought tremendous changes
in the country’s economic system.
NOTES
13.7 SELF ASSESSMENT QUESTIONS AND
EXERCISES
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House.
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Desai, A. R. 2008. Social Background of Indian Nationalism. Mumbai:
Popular Prakashan.
Chandra, Bipin. 2009. History of Modern India. Hyderabad: Orient
Blackswan.
Dube-Bannerjee, Ishita. 2015. A History of Modern India. Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press.
Self-Instructional
Material 235
Development of Education
Under the British Rule
UNIT 14 DEVELOPMENT OF
EDUCATION UNDER THE
NOTES
BRITISH RULE
Structure
14.0 Introduction
14.1 Objectives
14.2 Development of Education
14.3 Growth of Local Self-government
14.4 Answers to Check Your Progress Questions
14.5 Summary
14.6 Key Words
14.7 Self Assessment Questions and Exercises
14.8 Further Readings
14.0 INTRODUCTION
Initially, the East India Company did not think that it was its duty to impart
education to Indians. It allowed the old system of education to continue.
Pathshalas, which were open to all, imparted a special type of education
geared towards meeting the requirements of the rural society. Muslims
attended Madrasas. Higher education was confined primarily to upper castes.
This system of education was eventually changed by the British. The need
for low-ranking English-knowing Indian clerks was one of the main reasons
that prompted the government to take steps to spread Western education.
Western education, however, influenced Indian society in a way that
the British could never have imagined. Theories of philosophers like John
Locke, Jeremy Bentham, Adam Smith and Voltaire instilled in the Indian
minds notions of freedom, liberty, equality and democracy. As a result of
the exposure to such ideas, Indians began to recognize the need for change.
The demand for social and religious reform that manifested itself in
the early decades of the 19th century partly arose as a response to western
education and culture. India’s contact with the West made educated Indians
realize that socio-religious reform was a prerequisite for the all-round
development of the country.
Educated Indians like Raja Ram Mohan Roy, Ishwar Chandra
Vidyasagar worked systematically to eradicate social evils. A period of social
reforms began in India during the time of Governor General Lord William
Bentinck.
Self-Instructional
236 Material
Development of Education
14.1 OBJECTIVES Under the British Rule
In ancient India, the educational system embodied the method of oral teaching
and learning texts by heart. This system prescribed the ancient learning through
the transmission of knowledge from generation to generation, before it was
stored up in the form of manuscripts. The gurukul system which necessitated
the stay of the student away from his home at the house of a teacher or in
a boarding house of established reputation was one of the most important
features of the ancient Indian education. The Hindu Shastras recommended
that the student should begin to live under the supervision of his teacher after
his initiation ceremony. Direct, personal and continuous contact with a teacher
of noble character naturally produced great effect on the scholar during the
pliable period of childhood and adolescence. Texts of a spiritual bent were
studied at these centres of learning. After invasion by the Mughals, Persians and
the Turks, the culture and teaching of these denominations had a tremendous
influence on the Indian form of learning. The Muslims established madrasas
to disseminate theological learning among the Muslim children. There were
two main schools of education in pre-colonial India:
• Vedic form of education
• Education in the madrasas
• Education in Colonial Setup
Since in the initial stage, the East India Company’s position in India
was precarious and unsettled, the Company took a pragmatic stand and there
was a continuation of existing systems. The early policy of the East India
Company was that of non-intervention in the Indian social matters. In the last
two decades of the eighteenth century and the first decade of the nineteenth,
Company officials pursued a policy of conciliation towards the native culture
of its new dominion.
However, since the time the East India Company started ruling in
Bengal, the officials took a lot of interest in the issue of educating Indians.
Therefore, the three goals that the policy sought to pursue were as follows:
• Sponsoring Indians in their own culture
Self-Instructional
Material 237
Development of Education • Advancing knowledge of India
Under the British Rule
• Employing their knowledge in the government
Orientalism
NOTES
One also discerns in the earlier British administrators a respect for traditional
Indian culture that expressed itself in Warren Hastings’s policy of orientalism.
Orientalism was facilitated by a number of academics who were attracted to the
Indian civilization. Scholars were drawn to the service of the Company due to
the promotion of knowledge of Asia. As mentioned earlier, the Asiatic Society
was founded in Calcutta by William Jones, a judge in the newly established
Supreme Court of Bengal. Soon, Jones advanced his famous thesis on
the common origin of Indo-European languages. Some Company officials
argued that the Company should try to win over its subjects by surpassing
the region’s previous rulers in support of indigenous learning. This resulted
in the establishment of Benares Sanskrit College, which was founded in
Varanasi in 1791 during the administration of Lord Cornwallis. Warren
Hastings envisaged the Company as the successor of a great Empire, and
saw the support of vernacular learning as the appropriate role befitting the
empire. There was an attempt to learn about the Indian culture through a study
of scriptures in Sanskrit and Persian languages, and to use that knowledge
in the matters of governance.
In 1781, Hastings founded the Madrasa Aliya, an institution in Calcutta
for the study of Arabic and Persian languages, and Islamic Law. Some
Company officials endeavoured to become efficient administrators, and they
realized that knowledge of Indian languages and cultures facilitated this
endeavour. It led to the founding of the College of Fort William in Calcutta in
1800 by Lord Wellesley, the then Governor-General. The college later played
an important role both in the development of modern Indian languages and in
the Bengal Renaissance. Knowledge about the subject population, their social
customs, manners and codes were regarded as an essential precondition for
developing permanent institutions of rule in India. Many important Company
officials, such as Thomas Munro and Montstuart Elphinstone, were influenced
by orientalism. They supported the view that the Company’s government in
India should be responsive to Indian expectations. The orientalist philosophy
prevailed in the education policy well into the 1820s, and was echoed in the
founding of the Poona Sanskrit College in Pune in 1821 and the Calcutta
Sanskrit College in 1824. Hastings’ policy to govern the conquered in
their own ways and resist Anglicization thus revealed both the ideological
preferences of the early administrators and also their political practicality.
Evangelicalism
Evangelicalism is a Protestant Christian movement of England of the 18th
century. This movement in contrast to the Orthodox Church emphasized on
Self-Instructional
238 Material
personal experiences, individual reading of gospel rather than the traditions Development of Education
Under the British Rule
of the established church. While some Christian missionaries attempted to
reform the ‘degenerate Indian society’ quietly, the evangelists were openly
hostile to ‘Indian barbarism’ and desired to ‘civilize India’.
NOTES
The influential members of the Evangelicalism were Wilberforce, the
confidant of Pitt, Charles Grant, chairman of the directors and his son who was
a cabinet minister. They advocated bringing Christian West to the East and
“India will reform herself as a flower to the Sun”. Charles Grant propagated
the policy of assimilation of India into the great civilizing mission of Britain.
This attitude coincides with the liberalism advocated by Macaulay.
The British East India Company too agreed upon this philosophy of
civilizing India as by doing so they could have markets for their finished
products in India. Charles Grant too supported this idea as civilizing process
would lead to material prosperity. Thus, in the late 18th and the early 19th
centuries the idea of ‘improvement’ became a part of the civilizing process.
The then Governor General Cornwallis introduced permanent settlement in
Bengal as a part of his vision of improvement as the magic touch of property
would create capital and market in land.
When Wiliam Bentink became the Governor General of India by the
Charter Act of 1833, liberal minded Macaulay suggested that Indians should
be civilized through the Western education system. There arose a debate
between the orientalists who insisted that the old system of education be
continued and the Anglicists who supported the move of Macaulay. Finally,
the Western education system was introduced with the cooperation of the
reformer, Raja Ram Mohan Roy.
Utilitarianism
From the middle of the eighteenth to the nineteenth century, utilitarianism as
a school of thought dominated English political thinking. Francis Hutcheson,
Hume, Helvetius, Priestly, William Paley and Beccaria were some of the early
propagators of utilitarianism. However, it was Bentham who systematically
laid down the theory and made it popular on the basis of his innumerable
proposals for reform. The great philosopher of the twentieth century Bertrand
Russell rightly pointed out that Bentham’s merit consisted not in the doctrine
but in his vigorous application of it to various practical problems.
Bentham’s close friend James Mill introduced him to the two of the
greatest economists of the time, Malthus and David Ricardo from whom
Bentham was able to learn various concepts of classical economics. These
thinkers called themselves ‘Philosophic Radicals’. Their aim was to transform
England into a modern, liberal, democratic, constitutional, secular and market
state. The term ‘Utilitarianism’ was used interchangeably with philosophic
radicalism, individualism, laissez faire and administrative nihilism. The
principal assumptions of utilitarianism were that human beings, as a rule, Self-Instructional
Material 239
Development of Education sought happiness, that pleasure alone was good, and that the only right action
Under the British Rule
was that which produced the greatest happiness of the greatest number.
The utilitarian thinkers reiterated the ideas of the Greek thinker, Epicures.
Bentham provided a scientific approach to the pleasure–pain theory and
NOTES applied to the policies of the state, welfare measures and the administrative,
penal and legislative reforms. He provided a psychological perspective on
human nature.
In his book, Introduction to the Principles of Moral and Legislation,
Bentham elucidates his theory of utility. The keynote of his principle is that
the state is useful only so long as it caters to the ‘Greatest Happiness of the
Greatest Number’. Bentham aspired to create a complete utilitarian code of
law, which he named ‘Pannomion’. He proposed several legal and social
reforms. He set forth a fundamental moral tenet on which the code of law
should be based. He stressed that the right act or policy was that which would
cause ‘the greatest good for the greatest number of people,’ (i.e. the greatest
happiness principle or the principle of utility). He proposed the Hedonistic or
felicific calculus, which is a procedure for estimating the moral status of any
action. His utilitarian philosophy was revised and expanded by his student
John Stuart Mill. Mill converted ‘Benthamism’ into a principal element in the
liberal conception of state policy objectives. Bentham classified 12 pains and
14 pleasures. He proposed a ‘felicific Calculus’ to test the ‘happiness factor’
of any action. Using these measurements, he puts forward his views on the
concept of punishment and its utilization—whether it would generate more
pleasure or more pain for a society. He calls for legislators to assess whether
punishment becomes a reason for an even more evil offense. Bentham argues
that the unnecessary laws and punishments might ultimately give rise to new
and more dangerous offences.
Bentham advocated that, ‘nature has placed mankind under the
governance of two sovereign master, pain and pleasure. It is for them alone
to point out what we ought to do, as well as to determine what we shall do.
On one hand, the standard of right and wrong, on the other, the chain of
cause and effect, are fasten to heir thorn. The achievement of pleasure and
avoidance of pain are not only the motivating forces of human behaviour;
they also set the standards of values in life’. According to Bentham, what
applies to an individual’s morals, applies with equal force. For the state, he
pointed out that the action of the state is good, which increases pleasure and
decreases the pain of the largest number of the individuals comprising it.
All action must be judged by this criterion. According to him, if the state
promotes the greatest good of the greatest number it is good, otherwise it is
bad. For Bentham, only the greatest happiness of the greatest number can be
the measure of right and wrong. Hence, Bentham’s utilitarianism is based on
individualism as well as democracy.
The utilitarians also believed in the vision of civilizing and improving
Self-Instructional
240 Material
India like the evangelicalism. They were radicals and humanists and had a
strong faith in reason. The book, History of India, written by James Mill Development of Education
Under the British Rule
in 1817, was extensively read and referred to by the employees of East
India Company. This book caused immense harm to the Indian society by
laying the seeds of communalist approach to the study of Indian history and
civilization. The utilitarian philosophy also influenced the views of Dalhousie NOTES
in creating all-India departments with single heads. The utilitarians advocated
moral worth of an education that was good for the society and promoted
instruction in ‘useful knowledge’. Such useful instruction to Indians had the
added advantage of making them more suitable for the Company’s growing
bureaucracy.
According to Mill, the more the Asian people would be enlightened, the
happier they would be. For Mill, European manners, arts, and institutions are
far from perfect when assessed from the utilitarian perspective. From Mill’s
perspective, only when the moral and the political ideals and practices of
the utilitarian liberal doctrine were implemented in Europe and all over the
world could the maximization of global happiness be foreseeable.
Given his concern for India, Mill’s immediate objective was to bring
European enlightenment to India even before taking up the administrative
job in the East India Company in 1819. As early as in 1813, Mill denounced
in a review article the claim that Indians could not be enlightened; ‘Why
everything is unchangeable so long as nothing occurs which is calculated to
produce a change’. Mill thought that if the Indians had extensive interaction
with the Europeans, they would inevitably receive substantial positive impact
on their social progress from the Europeans. Mill believed that the extent
of progress which the Indians might attain through interacting with the
Europeans would be no less than what the Mughals had brought them: ‘an
intercourse with Europeans is not likely to produce effects less considerable,
than intercourse with a people so nearly on the same level of civilization with
themselves, as the Mahomedans’. For Mill, before the Moghuls ruled India,
the individual progress and the societal progress of the Hindu Indians had
been retarded because of their superstitions in Hinduism.
Mill fervently believed that the enlightenment of India would bring
the European civilization close to the ‘doors’ of other Asian people who
needed as much enlightenment from the Europeans as India. According to
Mill, it was desirable for people at higher level of progress to help those at
a relatively lower level of progress.
Mill believed that it was to the benefit of the Indians in the independent
states if they were governed by the British but objected to imposing British
institutions over them by offensive war.
Anglicists and Orientalists
English education was introduced in India in the eighteenth century through
the charity schools run in Calcutta, Madras and Bombay for the education Self-Instructional
Material 241
Development of Education of the European and Anglo-Indian children. The Company supported these
Under the British Rule
schools in various ways, but it did not take any direct responsibility for
the education of the indigenous population until 1813. The missionaries
worked for the dissemination of western education. They considered the
NOTES native languages and indigenous knowledge as backward. The missionaries
believed that western education would lead to proselytization. The Serampore
missionaries, in particular, were very eager to spread western education; their
settlement near Calcutta became the sanctuary of three Baptist missionaries—
Dr William Carey, Ward and Joshua Marshman. They ran schools for both
boys and girls and also started running a printing press and translating the
Bible into local languages. The number of such missionary activities before
1813 was, however, very small.
Indians who were well-versed in the classical and vernacular languages
were initially required by the East India Company for administrative needs. In
the judicial department, Indians conversant with Sanskrit, Arabic or Persian
were required to sit as assessors with English judges and expound Hindu
or Muslim law from Sanskrit, Persian or Arabic books. The knowledge
of Persian and vernaculars was also valued in the political department for
correspondence with the rulers of Indian states. These lower rungs of clerical
staffs in the revenue and commercial departments were also important, as
they had direct contacts with the uneducated masses due to their knowledge
of vernaculars. However, there was a gradual shift in the Company’s policies
and for higher grade of staff in the Company’s services, the knowledge of
English as well as that of vernaculars was later considered as indispensable.
The Court of Directors made a modest beginning towards the development
of education in India in 1813 when the Charter Act (1813) provided for an
annual expenditure of `1,00,000 ‘for the revival and promotion of literature
and the encouragement of the learned natives of India, and for the introduction
and promotion of a knowledge of the sciences among the inhabitants of the
British territories’. But this decision did not immediately decide the nature
of education to be provided for the Indians. In official thinking in India, the
orientalist thoughts were still powerful, having received strong support in a
then recent Minute of Lord Minto, the Governor General between 1806 and
1813. The new General Committee of Public Instruction was dominated by
the orientalists, who interpreted the clause to mean the advancement of Indian
classical literature and sciences of the land. The programme they initiated
was for the establishment of a Sanskrit College in Calcutta, and two more
Oriental Colleges at Agra and Delhi.
The main factor which tilted the scale in favour of the English language
and western literature was the Company’s education policy finding support
from the newly emerged Indian intelligentsia. These intellectuals were a
product of western education, who believed that the modernization of India
would be enabled through English education. Also, these Indians wanted a
Self-Instructional
242 Material
system of education which could help them to earn their livelihood. Raja Development of Education
Under the British Rule
Ram Mohan Roy protested against the government’s proposal to strengthen
the Calcutta, the Madras and the Benares Sanskrit College. He wrote to Lord
Amherst in 1823 that Sanskrit education could ‘only be expected to load the
minds of youth with grammatical niceties and metaphysical distinctions of NOTES
life which are of little or no practical use to their possessors or to society. The
students will therefore acquire what was known two thousand years ago, with
the addition of vain and empty subtleties since then produced by speculative
men.’ Advocating the importance of modern scientific learning, he wrote, ‘The
Sanskrit system of education would be best calculated to keep the country
in darkness, if such had been the policy of British Government. But as the
improvement of the native population is the object of the Government, it will
consequently promote a more liberal and enlightened system of instruction,
embracing Mathematics, Natural Philosophy, Chemistry, Anatomy with other
useful sciences.’ As a result of this, the government agreed to promote the
study of English as well as oriental languages.
A grant was sanctioned for the Calcutta Hindu College that was set
up in 1817 by the Bengali intelligentsia, which imparted instruction mainly
in English language and emphasized the study of Western humanities and
sciences. The government also set up three Sanskrit colleges one each at
Calcutta, Delhi and Agra. In addition, funds were set apart for the translation
of European scientific works into oriental languages.
There were two opposing groups who argued on the education policy in
India. The orientalists led by H.T. Prinsep advocated the policy of providing
encouragement to oriental literature, whereas the Anglicists favoured the
adoption of English as a medium of instruction. Bentinck, a utilitarian
reformist, took over as the Governor General in 1828 and British historian
and politician, Thomas Babington Macaulay was appointed the law member
in his council in 1834. The latter was immediately appointed as the President
of the General Committee of Public Instruction. On2 February 1835, he issued
his famous ‘Minute on Indian Education’. Macaulay favoured the viewpoint
of the Anglicists, which also included the utilitarians, led by James Mill,
who had begun to play a significant role in shaping the Company’s policies.
Full of contempt for oriental learning, Macaulay’s Minute asserted that
‘a single shelf of a good European library was worth the whole native literature
of India and Arabia’. He advocated for the Indians an education in European
literature and sciences, inculcated through the medium of English language.
Such an education, he argued, would create ‘a class of persons between us
and the millions whom we govern, a class of persons Indian in blood and
colour, but English in taste, in opinions, in morals and intellect’. Bentinck
immediately endorsed Macaulay’s proposals in an executive order of 7 March
1835. Regarding the importance of English language, Macaulay wrote:
‘Whoever knows that language has ready access to all the vast intellectual
Self-Instructional
Material 243
Development of Education wealth which all the wisest nations of the earth have created and handed in
Under the British Rule
the course of ninety generations... In India, English is the language spoken
by the ruling class. It is spoken by the higher class of natives at the seats of
Government. It is likely to become the language of commerce throughout
NOTES the seas of the East.’ Macaulay cited the examples of European Renaissance
and the case of Russia. He dilated upon ‘the great impulse given to the mind
of a whole society—of prejudice overthrown, of knowledge diffused, of task
purified, of arts and sciences planted in countries which had recently been
ignorant and barbarous’. In other words, he sought the production of ‘brown
Englishmen’ to fill the lower cadres in the Company’s administration.
The Government of Lord William Bentinck in the Resolution of 7 March
1835 accepted the viewpoint of Macaulay that, in future, the object of the
Company’s government should be the promotion of European literature and
sciences; through the medium of English language and in future all funds were
to be spent for that purpose. Bentinck supported the replacement of Persian by
English as the official language, the use of English as the medium of instruction,
and the training of English-speaking Indians as teachers. He was inspired by
utilitarian ideas and called for ‘useful learning’. Under Macaulay, thousands
of elementary and secondary schools were opened though they usually had an
all male student body. The universities in Calcutta, Bombay and Madras were
established in 1857, just before the Rebellion. By 1890, some 60,000 Indians
had matriculated, chiefly in the liberal arts or law. About a third entered public
administration, and another one-third became lawyers. The result was a very
well educated professional state bureaucracy. By the early 1830s, the Anglicists
had the control in devising education policy in India. Many utilitarian ideas were
employed in Thomas Babbington Macaulay’s ‘Minute on Indian Education’
of 1835. The Minute was to influence education policy in India well into the
next century. However, later it provoked great controversy.
Growth of Press
The growth of journalism in 19th century India was influenced by many
social currents. Modern English education brought with it new ideas from the
West. It resulted in the emergence of a new section of educated middle class
in the society and the press developed as a representative of these educated
sections. The press was run and owned by the educated class and was majorly
influenced by the socio-religious reform movements as the educated class
was also involved in reform activities. Moreover, the intense missionary
propaganda and its criticism of indigenous religious practices motivated the
Indians to counteract the criticism through the columns in various papers.
Above all, the healthy growth of Bengali vernacular journalism had its
influence over other parts of the country.
All these influences had a direct bearing on the growth of the press.
The early journals established by the educated sections of the Indian society
Self-Instructional
244 Material
in the three Presidencies of British India reflect this. These early efforts in Development of Education
Under the British Rule
the field of journalism reflected two significant trends broadly.
• First, in the light of new Western knowledge and liberal values the early
journals initiated a discussion on Hindu society, its religious practices,
NOTES
age old traditions and the evils inherent in them. Some journals also
suggested the reform of the old traditional values. These new ideas
invited protest from the orthodox section of the society and they began
to counter the reform efforts initiated by the emerging middle classes
who were influenced by the liberal values of the west. However, the
vigorous reform campaign attracted more attention from the press.
• Secondly, the uncontrolled missionary activities and their criticism of
Hindu traditions deeply hurt the feelings of the common people. This
religious controversy and theological tussle between the two groups
found an expression in the columns of the press.
These two broad strands influenced the growth of press in Madras
Presidency also. The beginning of English press owned by Indians was
witnessed as early as 1844. The initiation of the Indian-owned English press
was due to unhindered missionary criticism of the Hindu religious practices
in the journals published by Christian missionaries. The journals tried to
build up public opinion against the colonial rule and generate an anti-British
feeling by criticizing missionary activities.
The vernacular press made its beginnings around the same time. When
compared to the Bengali, Marathi and Gujarati press, the development
of Telugu press was rather slow. Ram Mohan Roy published two papers,
Sambad-Kaumudi in Bengali and Miratul Akbar in Persian, which was
propagating the case for social reform. Dada Bhai Naoroji edited Rast Goftar
and Ishwar Chandra Vidyasagar started Shome Prakash in 1890. In 1851
Gujarati fortnightly Rust Goftar was started by Dadabhai Naroji. English
weekly, the Indian Social Reformer, was started in Bombay to propagate
social reforms. The Times of India started in 1861; The Pioneer in 1865; The
Madras Mail in 1865, The Statesman in 1875. These papers usually supported
the policies of the British government.
The other papers were the Amrit Bazar Patrika started in Bengal in
1868 and the Hindu started in Madras in 1878. By the end of the 19th Century,
about 500 newspapers and journals in Indian languages and English were
started in different parts of the country.
Growth of English Newspaper
The advent of the first newspaper in India occurred in the capital city of
West Bengal, Calcutta. James Augustus Hickey is considered the ‘father of
Indian press’ as he started the first Indian English newspaper from Kolkata,
the Bengal Gazette or Calcutta General Advertise in January, 1780.
Self-Instructional
Material 245
Development of Education This first printed newspaper was a weekly publication. In 1789, the
Under the British Rule
first newspaper from Bombay (now Mumbai), the Bombay Herald appeared,
followed by the Bombay Courier in 1791. Later, in the year 1792, Bombay
Gazette merged with Bombay Herald. These newspapers carried news of the
NOTES areas under the British rule.
The three earliest English journals in the Presidency viz., The Native
Circulator (1844), Crescent (1844) and The Rising Sun (1857) were owned
by Telugus in the Presidential capital of Madras.
To fight the missionaries, Lakshminarasu bought the Native Circulator,
a newspaper founded by one Narayanaswamy Naidu and renamed it The
Crescent. This paper took on The Record, which was the missionary media
vehicle. The first editor of The Crescent was Mr. Harley, an ex-army man. The
first copy of the journal was brought out on 2 October 1844. The paper faced
difficulties from its inception as the Government denied it privileges granted
to other newspapers. The Crescent was published from Lakshminarasu’s
Hindu Press on Armenian Street. Initially, it was a bi-weekly-published on
Wednesdays and Saturdays, in addition to a special half-sheet edition every
Monday evening. Leading people of the time such as Madhava Rao, Sadasiva
Pillai, Seshayya Sastri and Rama Iyengar were regular contributors.
In 1785 Madras Courier Weekly was started. In 1840 Hindu Patriot
was started by Harishchandra Mukherjee. In 1862 Indian Mirror was started.
Initially the editor was Devendranath Tagore followed by Keshavchandra
Sen and Narendranath Sen. On 28 September 1861, Bombay Times, Bombay
Standard, Bombay Courier and The Telegraph merged together to form The
Times of India. Its editor was Robert Knight. Initially it was monthly but
latter changed to weekly. In 1875 Statesman was started by Robert Knight.
In 1890 Statesman and Friend of India merged to become Statesman. In
1865 Pioneer was started from Allahabad. On 20 September 1878, Hindu
was started from Madras by G. Subramanium Aiyar as a weekly but later it
was made triweekly in 1883 when Kusturiangar became its editor. In 1889
it was made a daily. Some of the English newspapers were as follows:
1. Times of India
The Times of India was called The Bombay Times and Journal of Commerce,
and was published every Saturday and Wednesday. J.E. Brennan was the
editor and the owners included a British syndicate of 11 firms. It was launched
as a semi-weekly edition by R.N.D. Velkar, a reformist leader. It became a
daily in 1850, and was renamed The Times of India after a merger with other
papers.
The merger was carried out by Robert Knight, ‘one of the most inspiring
figures in Indian journalism during the 19th century’, according to Dileep
Padgaonkar, renowned journalist and an editor of the Times of India during
Self-Instructional
1988-94 said—‘Through his (Knight’s) sharply-worded editorials, Knight
246 Material
campaigned for a sound system of popular rights in India and sought massive Development of Education
Under the British Rule
investments to extend the rail network, improve Bombay’s water supply,
construct roads and set up irrigation facilities,’ Padgaonkar (Outlook magazine
in November 2012). ‘He continued to upbraid British officials for the perks
they enjoyed, for their nastiness towards Indians and for doing precious little NOTES
to eradicate India’s abysmal poverty. Moreover, unlike the rest of the Anglo-
Indian press, he sympathized with the Great Uprising of 1857 even while he
deplored the large-scale destruction of lives and property.’
In the 19th century, the TOI had around 800 employees and was
circulated in India and Europe. In 1892, its editor, T.J. Bennett, entered into
a partnership with F.M. Coleman, resulting in the formation of the joint stock
company, Bennett, Coleman & Co. Ltd. (BCCL).
2. The Statesman
The Statesman is a direct descendant of two newspapers, The Englishman
and The Friend of India, both published in Calcutta (now Kolkata). The
Englishman was started in 1811 by Robert Knight, who was previously the
principal founder and editor of The Times of India. Knight founded The
Statesman and New Friend of India on 15 January 1875, which later adopted
the current name.
3. National Herald
The National Herald was established in Lucknow on 9 September 1938 by
Jawaharlal Nehru. The paper carried on its masthead the words ‘Freedom is
in Peril, Defend it with All Your Might’ taken from a cartoon by Gabriel from
Brentford. Jawaharlal Nehru was an early editor of the newspaper and until
his appointment as Prime Minister was the Chairman of the Herald’s Board
of Directors. In 1938, K. Rama Rao was appointed the paper’s first editor.
Following the Quit India Resolution of August 1942, the British Raj clamped
down on the Indian press and the paper was shut between 1942 and 1945.
4. Pioneer
The Pioneer was founded in Allahabad in 1865 by George Allen, an
Englishman. It was brought out three times a week from 1865 to 1869 and
daily thereafter. In 1866, a supplement, the Pioneer Mail, consisting of ‘48
quarto-size pages,’ mostly of advertisements, was added to the publication.
In 1872, Alfred Sinnett became the editor of the newspaper. He oversaw the
transformation of the newspaper to one of exercising great influence in British
India. In 1874, the weekly Pioneer Mail became the Pioneer Mail and India
Weekly News and began to feature short stories and travel writings. Author
Rudyard Kipling (1865-1936), in his early 20s, worked at the newspaper
office in Allahabad as an assistant editor from November 1887 to March
1889. In July 1933, The Pioneer was sold to a syndicate and moved from
Self-Instructional
Material 247
Development of Education Allahabad to Lucknow, Uttar Pradesh, at which time the Pioneer Mail and
Under the British Rule
India Weekly News ceased publication.
5. Hindu
NOTES Hindu, a monthly, was started by six people in 1878. In 1883 Hindu was
published as Tri-weekly (Monday, Wednesday and Friday evening). The
Hindu supported the government activities and gave wide coverage to INC
sessions. From1889, Hindu started getting published daily.
Consequences of Growth of Press
The press and literature played a very important role in moulding and shaping
the national consciousness of the Indians. Newspapers in those days were
started with the objective of public service by patriots. The newspapers
were published with the sole objective of arousing political consciousness,
to inculcate nationalism, to expose colonial rule and to preach disloyalty to
the masses by opposing the unjust and harmful policies of the government.
In particular, the role of the newspapers like The Indian Mirror, The
Bombay Samachar, and The Hindu Patriot, The Amrita Bazar Patrika,
The Hindu, The Kesari, The Bengalee, The Huriara. The Bengali Public
Opinion, The Reis and Rayet, The Samprokash, The Sulabh Samachar, The
Hitavadi, The Induprakash, The Swadeshimitran, The Advocate of Lucknow,
The Herald of Bihar are really noteworthy. By 1875, there was phenomenal
growth of newspapers in India which rose to 475 in number. These newspapers
created awareness among the masses of India about the need to be united
and to act with one voice to achieve their goal of freedom from foreign yoke.
Bipan Chandra observes that in the period from 1870 to 1918, powerful
newspapers emerged under distinguished and fearless nationalists. The
influence of the press extended far beyond its literate subscribers. Their
influence was not limited to cities and large towns only. All these changes
were an expression of the national awakening of India and contributed to
its further development. The Indian press helped shape and form public
opinion regarding colonial rule. It was also helpful in the organization of
political protests and promotion of nationalist struggle. Newspapers published
in English as well as vernaculars aimed at exposing the deceitfulness of
the British administrators, while at the same time making the ideas of
liberty, equality and democracy widely popular among the masses. It gave
a new colour to the idea of achieving independence. This resulted in an
unprecedented growth of the press in India, and by 1875, approximately 478
newspapers were published in the nation. There was not a single province
in India which did not produce a journal or newspaper to uphold the cause
of the freedom struggle.
National literature such as poems, novels, songs and pamphlets
engendered nationalist sentiments. Some of the prominent nationalist writers
Self-Instructional
248 Material
of the period were: Bankim Chandra Chatterjee and Rabindranath Tagore in Development of Education
Under the British Rule
Bengali; Lakshminath Bezbarua in Assamese; Vishnu Shastri Chiplunkar in
Marathi; Subramanya Bharathi in Tamil; Bharatendu Harish Chandra and
Prem Chand in Hindi and Altaf Husain Hali, Mohammed Shibli Nomani
and Mohammed Iqbal in Urdu. All of them stressed upon the humanistic NOTES
character, equality and freedom of all individuals.
The newspapers and journals gave opportunities to share ideas and
problems. Similarly, novel, drama, short story, poetry, song, dance, theatre,
art and cinema were used to spread views and express resistance to colonial
rule. They spoke the language of the people, showcasing their everyday lives,
joys and sorrows. Along with newspapers and journals, they promoted the
feelings of self-confidence, self-respect, awareness and patriotism, thereby
developing a feeling of national consciousness. Of these writers, the most
important are Raja Ram Mohan Roy, Ishwar Chandra Vidyasagar, Bankim
Chandra, M.G. Ranade, and many more by their literary works fostered the
spirit of patriotism and national consciousness among the masses.
The Indian Press played a notable role in mobilizing public opinion,
organizing political movements, fighting out public opinions and promoting
nationalism. In 1916, Home Rule League established by Annie Besant and
Bal Gangadhar Tilak, used print media as a propaganda vehicle. She started
‘Madras Standard’ and renamed it as ‘New India’. New India came with full
page editorial with news on the nation and freedom struggle.
Due to the First World War there was a setback in the newspaper
industry, hence printing cost increased which increased the cost of the
newspaper and as a result there was decrease in subscribers.
In 1915, after Gandhi returned from South Africa he started a chain of
newspaper called ‘Young India’ and ‘Navegiean’ in Gujarati. As his writing
style was simple and clear, it helped him to spread the notion of unity and
liberty among the Indians. Gandhi’s disciples started the same newspapers in
other languages in India to help spread the awareness that Gandhi was trying
to convey on such as poverty, women rights, ending untouchability and so on.
In 1919 the British government introduced Rowlatt Act which Annie
Besant fought through her writing in the newspaper. In 1920, Annie started
National University and introduced journalism as a diploma course and then
gave students internship in New India. Thus she is known as ‘Torch Bearer
of Indian Liberty’ and ‘Pioneer of Journalism’.
In 1930, Dandi Salt March was given wide publicity by the newspapers.
In 1938, the National Herald newspaper was started by Indian National
Congress (INC) which fully supported the INC activities. In 1941, ‘Dina
Thandi’ a Tamil newspaper daily, was founded by Aditanar, with its first
edition from Madurai.
Self-Instructional
Material 249
Development of Education The Indian Press grew and played an important role in rousing the
Under the British Rule
national consciousness of the people. The bi-weekly Kesari and Maratha
were started by Bal Gangadhar Tilak. The British Government passed many
Acts to impose censorship over the growing Indian Press from time to time.
NOTES In spite of the suppression, the Press played the role of awakening the people
to the need for reform and became one of the instruments in the growth of
nationalism. Some of the acts passed by the British government to curb the
press were as follows:
• Censor Act 1799 by Lord Wellesley: Every newspaper should print
the names of printer, editor and proprietor. Before printing any material
it should be submitted to the secretary of Censorship. This Act was
abolished by Hastings.
• Licensing Regulation Act 1823 by John Adam: Every publisher
should get a license from the government, defaulters would be fined
`400 and the press would be ceased by the government. Government
has right to cancel the license. Charles Metcalf abolished the Act.
• Vernacular Press Act IX 1878: Vernacular press criticized British rule.
Therefore British Government came down heavily on vernacular press.
Magistrates were authorized to ask any publisher of newspaper to give
assurance of not publishing anything threatening peace and security.
The magistrate’s decision was final in any dispute. This law was not
applicable to English Press. It was repealed by Lord Ripon in 1882.
• Newspaper Act 1908: Magistrate had the power to confiscate the assets
of the press. Against this confiscation one could appeal to High Court
within 15 days. Under this Act as many as 7 presses were forfeited.
• Press Regulating Act 1942: Registration of journalists was made
mandatory. Limitations were imposed on the messages regarding
civil disturbances. Prohibition of news was imposed regarding acts
of sabotage. Limitations on headlines and space given to news on
disturbances. Limitations on headlines and space given to news on
disturbances. Government had the authority on arbitrary censorship.
Emergence of the New Intelligentsia and its Composition
The 19th century witnessed a cultural–ideological struggle against the
backward elements of traditional culture, on the one hand, and the fast
hegemonizing colonial culture and ideology on the other. Many term this
phase as the Renaissance Age of India, just like what Europe had experienced.
It was a phase which saw changes and transformation in many areas of India’s
social and cultural fabric. In many ways the British colonization of India had
a lot to do with this. Even though the presence of the British caused some
destruction of wealth and culture of the country, yet it was also responsible
for growth in many other myriad areas, the most evident changes being in
Self-Instructional
250 Material
the field of education, language and social structures. The introduction of Development of Education
Under the British Rule
English language had a lot do with this revival and growth.
The main influences that led to this period of Renaissance were:
• Influence of Christian missionaries NOTES
• English language
• Western thoughts and ways of living
The influence of western thoughts and philosophies had a huge role
to play in awakening the already dormant potential of India’s creativity as
a nation and people. India with its rich heritage of spirituality and culture
had decayed a bit due to other foreign invasion over hundreds of years. The
Renaissance period saw a revival of the oppressed Indian spirit and soul, if
one were to put it that way. Each individual has a creative spirit which due
to various social conditioning becomes dormant or repressed, the same when
taken collectively as a nation or culture can wake up when a severe blow is
received from the outside. In case of India this is exactly what happened. The
British rule became both a bane and a boon in being a catalyst to a great revival
of India’s creative talents. The reasons that led to the Indian Renaissance of
nineteenth century were as follows:
• There was an influx of ideas from the western world in the political,
economic, social and cultural fields due to British rule.
• Indian and European scholars and intellectuals like Max Muller,
Sir William Jones, Raja Rammohan Roy, Bhagwan Lal Indraji,
R.G. Bhandarkar and M.G. Ranade fuelled the potential of India’s
cultural and spiritual growth.
• Great modern literature from scholars and writers such as Bankim
Chandra, Keshav Chandra Sen, Madhusudan Dutt led to new ways
of looking at India’s tradition and history as a nation with great
creativity and spirit. This led to a huge awakening of the human
consciousness in India.
The zealous Christian missionaries in their mission to spread
Christianity helped translate a lot of European literature and religious writings
into regional languages like Bengali, Marathi, Tamil and Telugu. This made
people of India, especially those belonging to the weaker sections of the
society, aware of their plight. The missionaries were hugely responsible for
spreading the message of equality of all human kind irrespective of caste and
class. They also attacked the other social evils that plagued the Indian society.
Emergence of the Reformists, Revivalists, Nationalists and Educated
Middle Class
The Indian society saw a sea change during the 19th century due to the impact
of English education and ideology. The new intelligentsia were in the form
of reformers, revivalists, nationalists and the educated middle class. Self-Instructional
Material 251
Development of Education 1. Emergence of the Reformists
Under the British Rule
Reformists are people who advocate gradual reform rather than abolition
or revolution. They support or advance gradual reform. In India, the British
NOTES conquest and the consequent dissemination of colonial culture and ideology
had led to an inevitable introspection about the strengths and weaknesses
of indigenous culture and institutions of India. The response, indeed, was
varied but the need to reform social and religious life was a commonly
shared conviction. The social base of this quest which has generally, but not
altogether appropriately been called the renaissance, was the newly emerging
middle class and the traditional as well as western educated intellectuals.
The British brought to India new ideas such as liberty, equality, freedom
and human rights from the Renaissance, the Reformation Movement and the
various revolutions that took place in Europe. These ideas appealed to some
sections of our society and led to several reform movements in different
parts of the country. At the forefront of these movements were reformists
such as Raja Ram Mohan Roy, Sir Syed Ahmed Khan, Aruna Asaf Ali and
Pandita Ramabai.
The impact of the efforts made by these numerous individuals, reform
societies, and religious organizations was felt all over and was most evident in
the national movement. Women started getting better education opportunities
and took up professions and public employment outside their homes. The
role of women like Captain Laxmi Sehgal of Indian National Army (INA),
Sarojini Naidu, Annie Besant, Aruna Asaf Ali and many others were extremely
important in the freedom struggle.
English language and western ideas also had some positive impact
on the society. Reformers like Raja Ram Mohan Roy, Ishwar Chandra
Vidyasagar, Swami Dayanand Saraswati, Sir Syed Ahmad Khan, and Swami
Vivekananda absorbed western ideas of liberalism and democracy and used
it to reform some of the non-humanitarian social and religious practices of
the time. Social and economic equality took root through political parties,
discussions and debates on public platform and the press.
The spirit of reform embraced almost the whole of India which
began with the efforts of Raja Ram Mohan Roy in Bengal which led to the
formation of the Brahmo Samaj in 1828. Apart from the Brahmo Samaj, the
Paramahansa Mandali and the Prarthana Samaj in Maharashtra and the Arya
Samaj in Punjab and North India were some of the prominent movements
among the Hindus. Some regional and caste movements like the Kayasth
Sabha in Uttar Pradesh and the Sarin Sabba in Punjab also existed. The
backward castes also started the work of reformation with the Satya Sodhak
Samaj in Maharashtra and the Sri Narayana Dharma Paripalana Sabha in
Kerala. The Ahmadiya and Aligarh movements, the Singh Sabha and the
Rehnumai Mazdeyasan Sabha represented the spirit of reform among the
Self-Instructional Muslims, the Sikhs and the Parsi respectively.
252 Material
Although religious reformation was the major criteria for these Development of Education
Under the British Rule
movements, none of them were exclusively religious in character. Strongly
inspired by humanism, the idea of otherworldliness and salvation were not
a part of the agenda of the reformists; instead their attention was focused
on worldly existence. Akshay Kumar Dutt and Ishwarchandra Vidyasagar NOTES
refused to be drawn into any discussion on supernatural questions. When
asked about the existence of God, Vidyasagar had responded by saying that
he had no time to think about God as there was much to be done on earth.
Bankim Chandra Chatterjee and Vivekananda emphasized the secular use
of religion.
2. Emergence of Revivalists
Revivalist is a person who promotes or holds religious revivals. In other
words, revivalists are those who revive former customs, methods, etc. During
the colonial administration, India faced the challenge of the intrusion of
colonial culture and ideology. Therefore, there was an attempt to reinvigorate
traditional institutions developed during the nineteenth century. The initial
struggle against colonial domination was in the realm of culture. Intrusions
into the cultural aspect of the society was felt intensely. Therefore, a defence
of indigenous culture developed almost simultaneously with the colonial
conquest. Those who championed this idea were known as revivalists.
This concern embraced the entire cultural existence, the way of life and
all signifying practices like language, religion, art and philosophy. The two
main features that highlighted this concern were—the creation of an alternate
cultural-ideological system and the regeneration of traditional institutions.
Some of the concerns were in the relm of vernacular languages, creation
of an alternate education system, regeneration of Indian art and literature,
emphasis on Indian ethnic dressing, food, religion and revitalizations of the
Indian system of medicine.
3. Nationalists of the Colonial Period
Nationalism is a belief, creed or political ideology that involves an individual
identifying with, or becoming attached to, one’s nation. It involves national
identity. A nationalist is one who tries to obtain political independence for
his or her country.
By 1900, the Congress had emerged as an all-India political organization
in India. It failed to attract Muslims, who felt that their representation in
government service was inadequate. Sir Syed Ahmed Khan launched a
movement for Muslim regeneration that culminated in the founding of the
Muhammadan Anglo-Oriental College at Aligarh in 1875 (renamed Aligarh
Muslim University in 1920), with the objective to educate wealthy students
by emphasizing the compatibility of Islam with modern western knowledge.
Self-Instructional
Material 253
Development of Education The nationalistic sentiments among Congress members led to the
Under the British Rule
movement to be represented in the bodies of government so as to have a say
in the administration of India. Congressmen considered themselves loyalists
but wanted an active role in governing their own country on behalf of the
NOTES British empire. This trend was personified by Dadabhai Naoroji, who went as
far as contesting, successfully, an election to the British House of Commons,
becoming its first Indian member.
Bal Gangadhar Tilak was the first Indian nationalist to embrace Swaraj
as the destiny of the nation.. Tilak deeply opposed the then British education
system that ignored and defamed India’s culture, history and values. He fought
against the British for the lack of any voice or role for ordinary Indians in the
affairs of their nation. For these reasons, he considered Swaraj as the natural
and only solution. His popular sentence ‘Swaraj is my birthright, and I shall
have it’ became the source of inspiration for Indians.
4. Emergence of the Educated Middle Class
The educated middle-class has been a source of imagining and articulating
India as a modern and democratic nation and hence they have been a part of
the historical and sociological category in modern India. This took place in
the later years of the colonial rule of the British over the Indian subcontinent.
After the end of the British rule in India, the Indian nationalist movement
and the middle-class leadership of this movement helped in the provision of
foundational values to the newly independent country.
The junction of colonialism, the democratic state and the capitalist
economic development helped in the germination of the seeds of the educated
middle class in India. The very first instance of the development of the middle
class can be located in the colonial period. The momentum for this came
from the rule of the British colony in India. The British rule brought with it
a lot of changes like the introduction of modern industrial economy, secular
education and many other administrative changes, over a time period of two
centuries. Schools and colleges were initiated in different parts of the country
especially in the colonial cities of Calcutta, Madras and Bombay.
A new class emerged in India over the years. There were those who
were employed in the administrative department of the British government
and apart from these were other professionals like doctors, teachers, lawyers
and journalists. These professionals usually came from privileged upper-caste
backgrounds and from families who were financially strong but not rich
enough to not have a means of earning. This is the one of the factors that set
them apart from the richest strata of the society such as the large hereditary
landlords or the heirs of an indigenous aristocratic family. Similarly, it also
put them right above the vast majority of the poor people of India.
Self-Instructional
254 Material
Ideas of liberalism and democracy had a huge impact on the nascent Development of Education
Under the British Rule
educated middle class who had acquired these ideas through modern education
in India and also abroad. The French Revolution brought with it the ideas
of liberalism and democracy and hence they became popular in the West
after the Revolution. The educated middle classes initiated ‘social reform NOTES
movement’ in their particular communities and urged Indians to fight for
their freedom from the colonial rule. However, even when these middle
classes were ‘modern’, they participated in movements related to identity
and helped in the strengthening of boundaries between and across religions
and communities.
Nature and Limitations of the Nineteenth Century Renaissance
During this period, reform movements were largely swayed by two important
intellectual principles—rationalism and religious universalism. A rational
secular outlook was replacing blind faith that had crept into tradition and
custom. Universalism was not purely philosophy. It affected political and
social outlook till religious particularism took root in the latter half of the
nineteenth century. The main objectives of this movement were liberal ideas,
national unity, and progress. These could be achieved by removing the
backward elements in traditional culture as well as the repressive elements
in colonial culture and ideology. Jettisoning casteism and idolatry had to be
done alongside an emphasis on reviving the vernacular languages. The plan
included restoring the indigenous education system by restoring the ancient
arts and medicine and reconstructing traditional Indian knowledge. The
socio-religious movements were an essential part of the growing nationalist
consciousness. At this point it was important to make Indians feel proud of
being Indian i.e. proud of their culture and heritage.
This movement succeeded in doing that. The colonial cultural
hegemonization process was stopped in its tracks. The early reform
movements talked about transformations that were required in both social
and religious arenas. The reason for this is not hard to find. As is well
known; social customs and traditions of India are closely linked to religious
injunctions. Indian reformers recognized this close connection between the
social and religious spheres of thought and activity. These early social reform
movements mainly aimed at general social welfare, and not at improving the
conditions of a particular community or caste.
The eighteenth and nineteenth century reform movements show major
trends. Some reformers such as Raja Ram Mohan Roy and Ishwar Chandra
Vidyasagar were of the view that reforms should be initiated from within the
society. Others wanted these changes to be backed by legislative intervention.
This meant that only state-supported reform movements could be
effective. This notion was supported by such reformers as Keshub Chandra
Sen and M.G. Ranade. The Young Bengal Movement represented reform
Self-Instructional
Material 255
Development of Education initiated through symbols of transformation. It represented a radical trend in
Under the British Rule
reform activity, and did not rely on the cultural traditions of India for reform.
Reformers such as Dayanand Saraswati and Swami Vivekananda amongst
others chose reform through social work.
NOTES
Women as the Focus of Social Reform
The status of Indian women in the pre-British Period was rooted in the
social, religious, economic and political structure of that period. Regrettably,
even Hindu religious literature such as the Puranas, Smritis, Ramayana and
Mahabharat was in many ways responsible for propagating prejudices against
women. Social evils against women were rampant in society. The horrific
practices of sati, child marriage, polygamy, female infanticide, deprivation
of education and other basic human rights, denying a widow the right to
remarry as well as of the right to inherit property, were only some of the
common evils prevalent in almost every part of India.
While it is true that British rule ruined Indian economy, it is also true
that British officials did make the effort to lift women out of their substandard
living conditions in this country. The British introduced in India a capitalist
economy and a legal and political regime which was based on the principles
of equality and freedom of the individual. Based on this, there were no
inequalities based on birth, sex, caste or community. For the Indian women
it was Western education, Western liberal thought, social reform movement,
modern institutions, and modern means of transportation and communication
that collectively played a positive role in their emancipation.
Significantly, the first protagonists for women’s emancipation
movement were not women but men (the liberal men). Women entered the
movement for their own emancipation much later in the late nineteenth and
early twentieth century when they were themselves thinking about their
status, and were speaking up and coming forward to espouse their cause.
In fact during this period i.e. nineteenth and the twentieth century, social
reformers were taking up the issue of women emancipation. Raja Ram Mohan
Roy was one of the earliest Indians to have started a movement against the
horrific practice of Sati. It was his persistence that paid off and the Anti-Sati
Resolution was passed in 1829.
Another social evil that dogged Hindu society was that of child marriage
and Indian women suffered in silence for centuries. Two prominent reformers,
Ishwar Chandra Vidyasagar and B.M. Malabari, a Parsi rigorously opposed
early marriage. It was the diligent efforts of Vidyasagar that paved the way
for passing of the Act of 1860. With this Act, the age of consent for married
and unmarried girls was raised to ten years. B.M. Malabari took it upon
himself to raise awareness of this evil through his journal Indian Spectator.
He further explained how child marriage was leading to the ruin of the Hindu
race. It was largely with his unrelenting efforts that the Age of Consent Act
Self-Instructional
256 Material
was passed in 1891. With this Act the age of consummation of marriage was Development of Education
Under the British Rule
raised from ten to twelve years.
In 1929, the Child Marriage Restraint Act (popularly known as the
Sarda Act) was passed, with which the marriageable age for girls became
NOTES
fourteen years and eighteen years for boys. Naturally, these developments
came as a breath of fresh air for women by improving their social condition.
It also made them aware that everything in life can be achieved if only one
fights for it.
Widows lived a pitiable life. Ishwar Chandra Vidyasagar in Bengal
and Malabari, Narmad, Justice Ranade and K. Natrajan in Bombay spoke
strongly for their cause and insisted that they be allowed to remarry and live a
respectable life. Their efforts did not go to naught and in 1856 Lord Dalhousie
passed The Widow Remarriage Act. Going against what the Shastras and
ancient Hindu literature professed Hindu widows could now remarry. Another
social ill that ailed our society was that of temple prostitution (devdasi). Even
as it was followed in different parts of India, this social evil was especially
rampant in South India, where a certain kind of opulence was associated with
the temples. Devdasis became a hereditary caste for these women who gave
themselves up in early childhood to temple service. They danced and sang
in the temples but were also forced into prostitution in these sacred places.
Muthulakshmi Reddi, a social reformer, pioneered a movement against this
shocking practice. In 1925 the government passed a law that prohibited the
trafficking of minors.
It seemed like there was no end to the cruelties that could be afflicted
against women. Another such issue was that of polygamy or ‘multiple
marriages’. Clearly, it was not a matter that was restricted to a certain
community. Sadly, it had crept into almost all communities and few could
escape it. Social activists strongly opposed it and wanted a stringent law
that would protect women. Some such activists were Keshub Chandra Sen
and Sir Sayyid Ahmad Khan. The Native Marriage Act was passed in 1872,
which forbade polygamy (and also polyandry—union of one woman with
many males) for Hindus. It gave a boost to the idea of widow remarriage and
allowed inter caste marriage for those who did not belong to any recognized
school or religious faith.
The significance and far reaching effects of education cannot be
underestimated. Indian social reformers of the time recognized this and
emphasized education rights for women. They believed that education would
make women both self-confident and knowledgeable. Pioneering work in
this direction was done by some social organizations such as Brahmo Samaj,
Arya Samaj, Rama Krishna Mission, the Aligarh movement, and by the
Christian missionaries of Holland (the Netherlands), America, Germany and
England. It was in May 1849 that Ishwar Chandra Vidyasagar with the help of
Bethune established and brought into being the first school for girls, ‘Hindu Self-Instructional
Material 257
Development of Education Balika Vidyalaya’. Even though it was meant only for girls who belonged
Under the British Rule
to high caste families it went a long way in removing prejudices against
female education. Vidyasagar succeeded in ensuring that people recognized
the importance of educating women. However there were many obstacles
NOTES in the way of providing education to women. One of them was the curse of
abysmal poverty which afflicted legions of Indian population. In spite of this,
there was a growth in women’s education and this can be seen from certain
statistical figures: number of girls attending schools rose from 1,230,000 in
1917 to 2,890,000 in 1937. Even though the Wood’s Despatch of 1854 and
the Hunter Commission of 1882 sought to push women’s education, it must
be emphasized that it was the efforts of the social reformers and the Christian
missionaries that were more effective. They were successful in opening and
running schools for girls. It is significant that social reformer and educationist
Professor Karve started the first Indian Women University in Pune in 1916.
The nationalist movement gave a different path to the process of social
reform for women, especially when women started to take part in it. The
Gandhian movement was one such organization where women participated.
Thousands of them thronged the political mass movement and did not
hesitate to picket liquor shops, march in demonstrations, court jails, and face
lathi charges and even bullets. Later, many women worked as ministers, as
under-secretaries and Deputy Speakers of provincial legislatures in Congress
governments which were formed in 1937. Indian women also became
members of local boards and municipalities. Women in India had come a
long way. A new awakening had taken place. They were ready to find their
place in the world and script their own destiny.
14.5 SUMMARY
Self-Instructional
Material 265
Development of Education • Evangelicalism: It is a Protestant Christian movement of England of
Under the British Rule
the 18th century. This movement in contrast to the Orthodox Church
emphasized on personal experiences, individual reading of gospel
rather than the traditions of the established church.
NOTES
• Utilitarianism: It is the doctrine that actions are right if they are useful
or for the benefit of a majority.
Chand, Tara. 2005. History of Freedom Movement in India. New Delhi: Asia
Publishing House.
Chandra, Bipan. 1999. Freedom Struggle. New Delhi: National Book Trust.
Chandra, Bipan. 1989. Rise and Growth of Economic Nationalism in India’s
Struggle for Independence. New Delhi: Penguin Books.
Choudhary, S. H. 1999. Civil Disturbances during the British Rule in India
(1765-1857). Calcutta: World Press Limited.
Self-Instructional
266 Material